Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n scripture_n tradition_n unwritten_a 5,821 5 12.7929 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27069 Which is the true church? the whole Christian world, as headed only by Christ ... or, the Pope of Rome and his subjects as such? : in three parts ... / by Richard Baxter ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1679 (1679) Wing B1453; ESTC R1003 229,673 156

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

be_v christian_n be_v this_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_v and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n from_o their_o common_a write_n the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n contain_v these_o great_a body_n 1._o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la 2._o all_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o general_a council_n if_o not_o also_o the_o provincial_n and_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la 3._o all_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o they_o have_v yet_o to_o bring_v forth_o as_o need_n require_v and_o do_v you_o not_o approve_v his_o modesty_n that_o say_v if_o any_o such_o be_v find_v that_o believe_v all_o this_o 2._o the_o second_o sort_n of_o their_o church-member_n be_v all_z who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o article_n and_o whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n ans._n but_o he_o tell_v you_o not_o a_o word_n what_o article_n these_o be_v nor_o what_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n whether_o it_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n or_o also_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n or_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v about_o their_o office_n and_o be_v here_o any_o notice_n how_o to_o know_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o former_a he_o that_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v believe_v be_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v there_o any_o such_o and_o what_o be_v that_o all_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v they_o 3._o his_o three_o sort_n of_o member_n be_v those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la vel_fw-la praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o the_o adult_n ans._n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o the_o same_o again_o we_o know_v none_o but_o the_o adult_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o here_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v all_o thing_n command_v be_v christian_n we_o be_v tell_v this_o before_o but_o it_o be_v with_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o know_v by_o this_o what_o your_o all_o be_v when_o we_o find_v man_n that_o do_v all_o command_v and_o sin_v not_o we_o will_v hope_v to_o find_v man_n that_o know_v all_o reveal_v and_o have_v no_o ignorance_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n 4._o his_o four_o sort_n be_v all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v we_o be_v not_o yet_o tell_v but_o five_o word_n set_v down_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v here_o yet_o a_o word_n to_o satisfy_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n what_o their_o faith_n be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n but_o reader_n have_v god_n leave_v we_o so_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a be_v christianity_n any_o thing_n or_o nothing_o if_o something_o have_v it_o not_o a_o essence_n which_o may_v be_v define_v be_v this_o all_o our_o notice_n of_o it_o that_o man_n that_o know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v christian_n or_o such_o as_o believe_v five_o article_n &_o cetera_fw-la judge_v now_o whether_o their_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o if_o any_o little_a part_n of_o it_o be_v visible_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o that_o visibility_n of_o particular_a member_n he_o tell_v we_o these_o be_v almost_o all_o christian_n and_o yet_o question_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o first_o be_v find_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v find_v than_o they_o 5._o and_o his_o five_o sort_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v uncertain_a which_o yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v be_v no_o small_a part_n that_o go_v for_o papist_n and_o note_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n which_o they_o use_v to_o approach_v to_o for_o necessary_a resolution_n and_o the_o recentior_n be_v more_o the_o present_a church_n than_o the_o ancient_n and_o according_a to_o these_o 1._o their_o church_n be_v confess_o doubtful_a or_o unknown_a as_o to_o most_o or_o multitude_n of_o member_n 2._o and_o note_n that_o their_o article_n be_v but_o two_o that_o god_n be_v and_o that_o he_o reward_v work_n all_o the_o common_a heathen_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o mahometan_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n faith_n and_o church_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n 3._o but_o mark_v reader_n another_o desperate_a corruption_n that_o baptism_n must_v concur_v with_o these_o two_o article_n o_o horrid_a corruption_n of_o christianity_n itself_o be_v this_o antiquity_n and_o tradition_n do_v the_o christian_a church_n use_v to_o baptize_v man_n that_o believe_v neither_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n do_v you_o baptize_v such_o in_o your_o church_n i_o suppose_v even_o pope_n stephen_n himself_o will_v have_v be_v for_o the_o re-baptining_a of_o such_o reader_n if_o one_o of_o we_o have_v charge_v such_o doctrine_n on_o the_o papist_n as_o this_o their_o champion_n do_v shall_v we_o not_o have_v be_v think_v to_o slander_v they_o viz._n that_o their_o late_a doctor_n hold_v that_o all_o that_o believe_v explicit_o but_o a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n and_o be_v baptize_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o that_o believe_v but_o this_o much_o shall_v be_v baptize_v that_o be_v all_o the_o mahometan_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o heathen_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o creed_n come_v to_o this_o but_o i_o confess_v if_o the_o world_n be_v persuade_v of_o this_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v his_o use_n of_o it_o for_o when_o he_o be_v once_o take_v for_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n if_o he_o can_v but_o prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o what_o need_v they_o now_o their_o feign_a embassy_n and_o submission_n to_o prove_v the_o abassine_n armenian_n and_o greek_n to_o be_v of_o their_o church_n when_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n be_v prove_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v protestant_n no_n part_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o live_a body_n may_v be_v define_v by_o head_n shoulder_n arm_n though_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n among_o philosopher_n whether_o hair_n humour_n etc._n etc._n be_v animate_v or_o part_n ans._n but_o 1._o it_o be_v know_v then_o that_o there_o be_v visible_o head_n and_o shoulder_n etc._n etc._n but_o you_o tell_v we_o not_o how_o to_o know_v any_o individual_a person_n to_o be_v visible_a member_n of_o your_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o man_n that_o hold_v all_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v make_v none_o visible_a while_o we_o be_v not_o tell_v either_o what_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v or_o by_o what_o profession_n or_o proof_n it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v so_o when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o sincere_a justify_v faith_n and_o love_n do_v prove_v true_a christian_n and_o that_o such_o there_o be_v it_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o prove_v but_o a_o church_n as_o invisible_a or_o unknown_a to_o we_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o have_v this_o sincerity_n so_o be_v it_o when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o till_o it_o be_v know_v what_o that_o be_v no_o profession_n can_v thereby_o prove_v they_o christian_n 2._o but_o what_o if_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o how_o to_o know_v those_o man_n that_o be_v certain_a or_o eminent_a member_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o to_o leave_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o almost_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o how_o know_v you_o who_o to_o admit_v to_o your_o sacramental_a communion_n or_o to_o use_v as_o a_o christian_a when_o a_o congregation_n of_o many_o thousand_o person_n call_v papist_n meet_v you_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o of_o these_o be_v of_o your_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o give_v they_o the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o you_o that_o they_o must_v be_v baptise_a though_o you_o know_v not_o after_o whether_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n remember_v reader_n that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o what_o mercy_n god_n show_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o whether_o any_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o whether_o papist_n make_v it_o not_o uncertain_a and_o whether_o he_o
confirmation_n vocation_n mission_n jurisdiction_n all_o these_o explain_v sect._n 8._o he_o make_v the_o chapter_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n day_n to_o have_v have_v the_o power_n of_o choose_v all_o the_o parish_n priest_n pope_n no_o pope_n for_o want_v of_o common_a consent_n sect._n 9_o who_o must_v choose_v a_o monarch_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n sect._n 10._o their_o succession_n interrupt_v sect._n 11._o 12._o be_v it_o essential_a to_o a_o bishop_n to_o have_v many_o congregation_n parish_n or_o presbyter_n by_o affirm_v this_o he_o nullifi_v all_o the_o first_o bishop_n who_o be_v bishop_n before_o they_o make_v presbyter_n under_o they_o and_o so_o deny_v all_o succession_n by_o deny_v the_o root_n chap._n 5._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o tradition_n sect._n 1_o he_o think_v the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o world_n may_v be_v know_v by_o every_o christian_a as_o easy_o as_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n sect._n 2._o tradition_n against_o popery_n sect._n 4._o the_o protestant_n abassine_n armenian_n greek_n etc._n etc._n be_v of_o one_o church_n sect._n 4._o the_o contradiction_n of_o w._n j._n the_o unity_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n as_o such_o great_a than_o the_o unity_n of_o papist_n as_o papist_n sect._n 5._o chap._n 6._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o a_o general_n council_n his_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v no_o definition_n sect._n 2._o council_n of_o old_a not_o call_v by_o the_o pope_n sect._n 3_o his_o confusion_n and_o contradiction_n sect._n 4._o general_a council_n be_v but_o of_o the_o empire_n prove_v sect._n 5._o the_o impossibility_n and_o utter_a unlawfulness_n of_o a_o true_a universal_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n prove_v sect._n 6._o how_o many_o make_v a_o universal_a council_n sect._n 7._o they_o make_v presbyter_n uncapable_a of_o vote_a in_o council_n and_o yet_o the_o high_a ancient_a part_n of_o the_o papacy_n viz._n to_o preside_v in_o council_n be_v oft_o depute_a to_o presbyter_n sect._n 8._o the_o council_n of_o basil_n that_o have_v presbyter_n reject_v by_o they_o for_o other_o reason_n sect_n 9_o chap._n 7._o what_o they_o mean_v by_o schism_n papist_n acquit_v all_o from_o schism_n who_o separate_v not_o from_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n sect._n 1_o we_o separate_v not_o from_o the_o greek_n arminian_n etc._n etc._n sect._n 3_o he_o absurd_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v our_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o they_o if_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o sect._n 4._o we_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o sect._n 5._o how_o far_o we_o separate_v from_o rome_n sect._n 6._o they_o be_v not_o our_o lawful_a pastor_n sect._n 7._o of_o hear_v the_o pharisee_n sect._n 8._o we_o infer_v not_o rebellion_n against_o authority_n by_o our_o reject_v traitorous_a usurper_n sect._n 9_o whether_o the_o first_o reformer_n know_o and_o wilful_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n sect._n 10._o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n unity_n be_v perfect_a and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o schism_n in_o it_o but_o only_o from_o it_o when_o their_o own_o sect_n have_v a_o schism_n by_o divers_a pope_n for_o forty_o year_n whether_o all_o that_o follow_v the_o wrong_a pope_n those_o forty_o year_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o damn_a sect._n 11._o his_o definition_n of_o schism_n agree_v best_a to_o the_o papist_n who_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n save_o their_o own_o sect_n sect._n 12._o a_o admonition_n to_o other_o sect._n 13._o my_o reason_n unanswered_a by_o which_o i_o prove_v 1._o that_o we_o interrupt_v not_o our_o church_n succession_n when_o we_o break_v off_o from_o rome_n 2._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v change_v in_o essential_o part_n ii_o the_o preface_n all_o be_v not_o well_o say_v or_o do_v by_o every_o bishop_n or_o council_n of_o old_a sect._n 1_o 2_o 3._o of_o the_o considerableness_n of_o the_o extra-imperial_a church_n of_o old_a sect._n 4_o 5._o the_o plea_n of_o peter_n supremacy_n and_o their_o succession_n overthrow_v there_o never_o be_v twelve_o patriarchal_a seat_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n no_o one_o patriarch_n claim_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n successor_n but_o rome_n and_o antioch_n and_o antioch_n never_o claim_v supremacy_n on_o that_o account_n sect._n 6._o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n sect._n 7._o papist_n make_v christian_n no_o christian_n for_o not_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o no_o christian_n to_o be_v christian_n if_o they_o will_v be_v his_o subject_n sect._n 8_o 9_o what_o i_o maintain_v sect._n 10._o a_o discourse_n republish_v prove_v that_o christ_n church_n have_v no_o universal_a head_n but_o himself_o pope_n nor_o council_n chap._n 1._o the_o confutation_n of_o w._n i_n reply_n twelve_o instance_n confu●…ing_v the_o wild_a fundamental_a principle_n of_o w._n j._n that_o whatever_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n be_v essential_a to_o it_o sect._n 4._o by_o this_o he_o unchurch_v rome_n sect._n 5._o he_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n but_o not_o to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o such_o as_o have_v sufficient_a proposal_n confute_v sect_n 6._o by_o this_o their_o church_n can_v be_v know_v or_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o few_o may_v make_v other_o christian_n sect._n 7._o his_o assertion_n further_o confute_v sect._n 8._o his_o logical_a proof_n shame_v that_o every_o accident_n be_v separable_a and_o therefore_o all_o that_o christ_n institute_v to_o continue_v be_v no_o accident_n sect._n 9_o whether_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o institution_n for_o continuance_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n sect._n 10._o they_o unchurch_n themselves_o sect._n 11._o he_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o christian_a nation_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n express_o but_o implicit_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o they_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n five_o notable_a consequent_n of_o this_o the_o true_a method_n of_o believe_v sect._n 12._o the_o instance_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o iberian_o and_o indian_n vindicate_v he_o suppose_v that_o every_o reveal_v truth_n be_v teach_v they_o by_o lay-person_n sect._n 13._o the_o instance_n of_o peter_n not_o preach_v his_o own_o supremacy_n act._n 2._o vindicate_v sect._n 14._o the_o indian_n convert_v by_o the_o english_a and_o dutch_a be_v teach_v the_o true_a faith_n sect._n 15._o and_o so_o be_v the_o abassine_n sect._n 16._o his_o doctrine_n against_o christ_n visible_a reign_n contain_v many_o gross_a error_n common_o call_v heresy_n and_o by_o make_v the_o christian_a world_n a_o monster_n if_o it_o have_v not_o one_o papal_a head_n he_o make_v the_o humane_a world_n a_o monster_n because_o it_o have_v not_o one_o humane_a king_n sect._n 17._o chap._n 2._o our_o church_n visibility_n confess_v they_o to_o be_v by_o they_o prove_v how_o far_o any_o protestant_n grant_v the_o power_n of_o patriarch_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o patriarch_n sect._n 1_o he_o bid_v i_o but_o prove_v that_o any_o church_n which_o now_o deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o he_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o that_o church_n always_o deny_v it_o or_o not_o sect._n 2._o note_n hereon_o whether_o they_o shall_v exclaim_v against_o christ_n as_o a_o invisible_a head_n who_o make_v he_o as_o visible_a in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o every_o receiver_n as_o a_o king_n be_v in_o his_o clothes_n sect._n 3_o whether_o a_o ministry_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o universal_a church_n sect._n 4._o his_o argument_n against_o our_o christianity_n re-examined_a and_o confute_v by_o divers_a instance_n of_o such_o fallacy_n sect._n 5._o he_o require_v a_o instance_n of_o any_o church-unity_n though_o without_o a_o humane_a head_n which_o end_v the_o controversy_n sect._n 6._o more_o difference_n and_o great_a among_o papist_n than_o among_o all_o the_o other_o church_n sect._n 7._o he_o have_v no_o evasion_n but_o say_v that_o these_o church_n be_v not_o christian_n because_o they_o depend_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n from_o which_o he_o before_o say_v that_o he_o abstract_v sect._n 8._o he_o deny_v we_o with_o the_o abassine_n greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o one_o church_n both_o full_o prove_v sect._n 9_o the_o charge_n of_o nestorianism_n and_o eutichianism_n on_o many_o church_n examine_v sect._n 10._o his_o shameful_a call_n for_o the_o name_n of_o sect_n and_o require_v proof_n of_o the_o negative_a that_o they_o be_v not_o such_o sect._n 11._o chap._n 3._o more_o of_o our_o unity_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o celestine_n legate_n at_o ephesus_n sect._n 1_o 2._o his_o say_n and_o unsay_n sect._n 3_o his_o
part_n that_o be_v there_o if_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o there_o be_v there_o fire_n water_n air_n earth_n gold_n silver_z or_o man_n or_o devil_n create_v by_o god_n i_o neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v or_o be_v not_o a_o sadducee_n or_o a_o atheist_n may_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v good_a be_v this_o a_o implicit_a actual_a belief_n that_o god_n angel_n and_o spirit_n be_v good_a when_o he_o believe_v not_o that_o in_o heaven_n or_o anywhere_o else_o there_o be_v any_o god_n or_o any_o angel_n or_o spirit_n a_o protestant_n believe_v that_o he_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o bible_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o traitor_n against_o christ_n by_o claim_v his_o prerogative_n do_v he_o also_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n because_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a protestant_n believe_v that_o all_o tradition_n be_v true_a which_o real_o come_v down_o to_o we_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o credible_a evidence_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o papist_n tradition_n to_o be_v true_a when_o they_o believe_v multitude_n of_o they_o to_o be_v novelty_n or_o fiction_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n woman_n mention_v by_o dr._n white_n believe_v the_o creed_n but_o she_o know_v and_o believe_v no_o more_o of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o that_o it_o be_v some_o good_a thing_n she_o know_v not_o what_o or_o else_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v in_o the_o creed_n but_o he_o go_v on_o you_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v rise_v at_o the_o last_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o many_o thousand_o ans._n and_o what_o then_o if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o those_o thousand_o have_v a_o be_v and_o be_v man_n i_o can_v know_v or_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v rise_v notwithstanding_o i_o believe_v that_o all_o shall_v rise_v and_o if_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o or_o thousand_o that_o you_o may_v name_n shall_v rise_v i_o know_v not_o because_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o you_o feign_v not_o man_n that_o never_o be_v if_o any_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v more_o man_n in_o the_o world_n than_o he_o have_v see_v he_o can_v believe_v that_o any_o more_o shall_v rise_v and_o yet_o may_v believe_v that_o all_o shall_v rise_v not_o all_o in_o true_a reality_n as_o signify_v the_o whole_a that_o have_v exi_v indeed_o but_o all_o as_o the_o subject-term_n in_o the_o proposition_n when_o i_o say_v all_o shall_v rise_v i_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o proposition_n but_o i_o know_v many_o individual_n contain_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o i_o personal_o know_v and_o that_o there_o have_v be_v more_o than_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o and_o by_o the_o word_n all_o i_o mean_v all_o these_o particular_n inclusive_o and_o so_o the_o word_n be_v a_o general_n express_v a_o totum_fw-la some_o of_o who_o part_n i_o have_v know_v by_o sight_n and_o other_o by_o history_n and_o i_o know_v that_o other_o part_n have_v be_v but_o some_o part_n i_o know_v not_o at_o all_o that_o they_o have_v be_v according_o my_o belief_n be_v according_a to_o the_o object_n partly_o singular_a partly_o particular_a partly_o indefinite_a and_o partly_o universal_a he_o proceed_v act._n 24._o 5_o 14._o credens_fw-fr omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la &_o prophetis_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la yet_o paul_n have_v not_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a contain_v in_o they_o ans._n then_o he_o have_v not_o a_o actual_a belief_n of_o those_o particular_n he_o believe_v in_o general_a that_o all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o he_o believe_v all_o in_o particular_a which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v part_n of_o that_o word_n but_o when_o he_o think_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o persecute_v and_o blaspheme_v he_o have_v he_o then_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o this_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n he_o add_v a_o christian_a that_o have_v forget_v some_o sin_n yet_o at_o death_n be_v sorrowful_a for_o all_o his_o sin_n have_v he_o no_o actual_a sorrow_n for_o that_o forget_a sin_n i_o answer_v no_o if_o he_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n of_o it_o there_o be_v some_o that_o christ_n foretell_v will_v think_v that_o they_o do_v god_n service_n by_o kill_v his_o servant_n do_v you_o think_v that_o if_o these_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n in_o general_a and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o duty_n that_o this_o be_v a_o actual_a repentance_n for_o this_o sin_n nay_o be_v a_o mere_a general_a repentance_n any_o actual_a repentance_n at_o all_o if_o it_o extend_v to_o no_o particular_n if_o a_o man_n say_v i_o repent_v of_o all_o my_o sin_n but_o i_o think_v i_o have_v no_o sin_n but_o my_o hear_n pray_v be_v a_o christian_n etc._n etc._n do_v he_o actual_o repent_v of_o any_o and_o as_o to_o your_o instance_n if_o you_o do_v but_o forget_v a_o sin_n it_o imply_v that_o you_o do_v once_o remember_v it_o and_o perhaps_o repent_v of_o it_o then_o but_o if_o you_o know_v not_o or_o remember_v not_o that_o ever_o you_o commit_v any_o such_o thing_n or_o that_o it_o be_v any_o sin_n you_o have_v no_o actual_a repentance_n of_o that_o sin_n o_o but_o say_v he_o what_o horrid_a doctrine_n will_v this_o be_v ans._n what_o a_o childish_a exclamation_n be_v this_o it_o be_v ten_o to_o one_o but_o if_o you_o be_v well_o examine_v 10._o yourself_o you_o will_v confess_v that_o all_o this_o quarrel_n be_v but_o de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la you_o confess_v that_o here_o be_v no_o particular_a repentance_n or_o faith_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n nor_o be_v universals_z as_o contain_v the_o particular_n know_v confuse_o in_o themselves_o but_o with_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n you_o will_v cheat_v they_o that_o have_v only_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o universal_a proposition_n that_o you_o may_v see_v it_o be_v no_o horrid_a doctrine_n consider_v that_o 1._o if_o this_o general_a repentance_n have_v also_o join_v a_o particular_a repentance_n of_o all_o such_o sin_n as_o must_v be_v so_o repent_v of_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n than_o a_o virtual_a repentance_n of_o other_o forget_a particular_a sin_n will_v prove_v sufficient_a to_o pardon_v and_o salvation_n a_o general_a repentance_n which_o have_v a_o actual_a hatred_n of_o sin_n as_o sin_n and_o a_o habit_n incline_v the_o person_n unfeigned_o to_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n when_o he_o know_v it_o join_v with_o a_o actual_a repentance_n of_o all_o that_o he_o know_v and_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o know_v all_o this_o be_v not_o a_o actual_a repentance_n of_o the_o unknown_a particular_n but_o it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o virtual_a repentance_n of_o they_o because_o there_o be_v that_o cause_n that_o virtue_n that_o grace_n which_o will_v produce_v a_o actual_a repentance_n if_o the_o impediment_n of_o forgetfulness_n be_v remove_v but_o even_o confuse_a actual_a repentance_n have_v not_o a_o total_a oblivion_n or_o ignorance_n of_o the_o particular_n but_o only_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n and_o memory_n of_o they_o and_o be_v another_o thing_n than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o universals_z he_o add_v one_o that_o forgive_v all_o injury_n and_o have_v forget_v some_o do_v he_o not_o forgive_v those_o forget_v ans._n yes_o if_o the_o word_n forgiveness_n signify_v the_o effect_n or_o his_o act_n as_o sufficient_a to_o that_o effect_n for_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o discharge_v acquit_v or_o forgive_v another_o by_o a_o mere_a general_a remission_n or_o discharge_n though_o he_o remember_v but_o one_o or_o no_o particular_a at_o all_o but_o if_o by_o forgive_a you_o mean_v a_o act_n of_o his_o will_n who_o object_n be_v the_o crime_n as_o well_o as_o the_o punishment_n and_o evil_a consequent_n remit_v he_o so_o actual_o forgive_v in_o his_o own_o mental_a act_n no_o more_o than_o he_o know_v but_o his_o general_a forgiveness_n suffice_v to_o all_o the_o end_n without_o it_o and_o such_o a_o sufficient_a remission_n go_v common_o by_o the_o name_n of_o full_a forgiveness_n but_o instead_o of_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n you_o play_v with_o ambiguous_a word_n of_o another_o sense_n and_o subject_n forgive_a another_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o will_n who_o effect_n be_v extrinsical_a and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v burn_v a_o house_n or_o give_v away_o or_o sell_v a_o house_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o though_o he_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o it_o so_o a_o man_n may_v remit_v all_o debt_n or_o penalty_n
church_n can_v or_o do_v not_o err_v in_o tell_v i_o what_o be_v god_n revelation_n before_o i_o can_v know_v or_o believe_v any_o of_o his_o revelation_n if_o they_o mean_v that_o this_o act_n of_o faith_n must_v go_v first_o before_o i_o can_v have_v any_o other_o why_o may_v i_o not_o know_v and_o believe_v other_o article_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o divine_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n or_o infallibility_n as_o i_o may_v believe_v this_o one_o god_n have_v reveal_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a or_o true_a in_o tell_v i_o what_o i_o must_v believe_v if_o one_o article_n may_v be_v believe_v without_o that_o motive_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o believe_v before_o it_o be_v believe_v why_o not_o other_o as_o well_o as_o that_o 3._o and_o which_o way_n or_o by_o what_o revelation_n do_v god_n confer_v this_o infallibility_n on_o the_o church_n if_o by_o scripture_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o yet_o you_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v true_a till_o you_o have_v first_o believe_v the_o church_n veracity_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v that_o way_n if_o by_o verbal_a tradition_n it_o be_v equal_o suppose_v that_o you_o know_v not_o that_o tradition_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a before_o you_o know_v the_o church_n veracity_n that_o tell_v you_o so_o so_o that_o the_o question_n how_o i_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n veracity_n herein_o by_o what_o divine_a revelation_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v any_o other_o revelation_n be_v still_o unanswered_a and_o answerable_a only_o by_o palpable_a contradiction_n but_o be_v it_o not_o for_o interpret_n he_o contrary_n to_o his_o company_n i_o shall_v by_o his_o word_n here_o 17._o judge_v that_o it_o be_v no_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n veracity_n which_o he_o make_v pre-requisite_a to_o all_o other_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v prudential_n motive_n of_o cre●…bility_n which_o must_v draw_v he_o to_o afford_v credit_n to_o that_o authority_n as_o derive_v from_o god_n which_o commend_v to_o he_o the_o bible_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ans._n mark_v reader_n it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o must_v be_v the_o prudential_a motive_n to_o credit_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o derive_v from_o god_n so_o the_o church_n authority_n must_v be_v first_o credit_v that_o he_o may_v credit_v it_o or_o else_o the_o authority_n not_o credit_v must_v move_v he_o to_o credit_v it_o which_o be_v all_o contradiction_n unless_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o church_n authority_n credit_v by_o a_o humane_a faith_n or_o by_o some_o notify_n or_o conjectural_a evidence_n beside_o divine_a revelation_n must_v move_v he_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v authorize_v by_o god_n when_o they_o have_v tell_v we_o whether_o that_o first_o credit_n give_v to_o the_o church_n have_v any_o certainty_n for_o its_o object_n and_o also_o what_o and_o whence_o that_o certainty_n be_v we_o shall_v know_v what_o to_o say_v to_o they_o knot_n against_o chillingworth_n be_v fain_o tosay_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n own_o miracle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v know_v to_o have_v divine_a authority_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v any_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o god_n word_n be_v his_o word_n and_o true_a till_o he_o be_v first_o sure_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v wrought_v such_o miracle_n as_o prove_v its_o veracity_n as_o from_o god_n which_o will_v require_v in_o the_o catechumene_fw-la so_o much_o acquaintance_n with_o historical_a legend_n which_o the_o more_o he_o read_v they_o the_o less_o he_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o will_v make_v it_o a_o far_o long_o and_o more_o uncertain_a way_n to_o become_v a_o christian_n than_o better_a teacher_n have_v of_o old_a make_v use_n of_o and_o 2._o it_o seem_v when_o all_o be_v do_v that_o he_o take_v this_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o a_o prudential_a motive_n but_o be_v it_o certain_a or_o uncertain_a if_o uncertain_a so_o will_v all_o be_v that_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o if_o certain_a again_o tell_v we_o by_o what_o ascertain_v evidence_n reader_n it_o be_v the_o crooked_a way_n into_o which_o byassing-interest_n have_v tempt_v these_o man_n to_o lead_v poor_a soul_n which_o be_v thus_o perplex_v and_o confound_v 18._o how_o plain_a and_o sure_o a_o way_n god_n have_v prescribe_v we_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o in_o a_o small_a tractate_n call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n in_o short_a it_o be_v possible_a if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v but_o one_o sermon_n which_o mention_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o find_v a_o bible_n on_o the_o highway_n and_o read_v it_o that_o he_o may_v see_v that_o evidence_n in_o it_o that_o may_v persuade_v he_o save_o to_o believe_v through_o grace_n that_o it_o true_o affirm_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o ordinary_a method_n for_o most_o rational_a certainty_n be_v to_o have_v first_o historical_n ascertain_v evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n that_o this_o book_n be_v indeed_o write_v and_o these_o miracle_n and_o other_o thing_n do_v as_o it_o affirm_v or_o first_o perhaps_o that_o this_o baptismal_a covenant_n lord_n prayer_n creed_n and_o decalogue_n have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o first_o witness_n of_o christ_n and_o miracle_n wrought_v to_o confirm_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v also_o write_v at_o large_a in_o that_o book_n this_o we_o have_v far_o great_a historical_a certainty_n of_o than_o the_o pretend_a authority_n of_o a_o judging-church_n of_o rome_n even_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o as_o to_o the_o essential_o baptism_n the_o creed_n etc._n etc._n of_o heretic_n infidel_n and_o heathen_n which_o i_o have_v open_v at_o large_a in_o a_o book_n call_v the_o reason_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o another_o call_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o infidelity_n and_o in_o other_o write_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n with_o the_o book_n be_v thus_o certain_o bring_v down_o to_o we_o as_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o land_n be_v we_o then_o know_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o book_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o all_o those_o evidence_n which_o in_o the_o foresay_a treatise_n i_o have_v open_v at_o large_a and_o more_o brief_o in_o a_o treatise_n call_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o christ_n agent_n advocate_n and_o witness_v in_o his_o work_n of_o divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n or_o love_n print_v first_o on_o christ_n himself_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o then_o on_o the_o apostle_n their_o work_n and_o doctrine_n and_o then_o on_o all_o sanctify_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o especial_o on_o ourselves_o beside_o his_o antecedent_n prophecy_v pag._n 16._o he_o again_o pretend_v that_o he_o need_v not_o name_v the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n because_o i_o myself_o say_v they_o must_v be_v the_o essential_o and_o it_o be_v suppose_v i_o understand_v my_o own_o term_n 19_o ans._n a_o candid_a disputant_n the_o light_n follow_v he_o while_o he_o fly_v from_o it_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o if_o i_o know_v my_o own_o meaning_n i_o therefore_o know_v you_o and_o if_o i_o know_v which_o be_v the_o essential_o that_o therefore_o you_o know_v they_o and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n pag._n 17._o the_o man_n will_v make_v i_o believe_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o true_a divinity_n when_o i_o say_v that_o divine_a and_o humane_a faith_n may_v be_v conjunct_a when_o the_o testimony_n be_v so_o conjunct_a as_o that_o we_o be_v sure_a 20._o that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o speak_v by_o man_n who_o be_v therefore_o credible_a because_o god_n infallible_o guide_v and_o inspire_v he_o he_o will_v make_v you_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o singular_a and_o erroneous_a here_o ans._n and_o why_o he_o say_v that_o will_v make_v christian_a faith_n partly_o humane_a but_o 1._o when_o i_o talk_v but_o of_o two_o faith_n conjunct_a what_o if_o i_o call_v the_o former_a divine_a faith_n only_o the_o christian_a faith_n may_v not_o a_o humane_a yet_o be_v conjunct_a with_o the_o christian_a 2._o but_o word_n must_v be_v examine_v if_o christian_a faith_n be_v so_o call_v from_o the_o object_n than_o christ_n and_o not_o his_o apostle_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o name_n material_o we_o be_v call_v christian_n for_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o not_o for_o believe_v in_o they_o 2._o if_o christian_a faith_n be_v take_v subjective_o it_o be_v humane_a faith_n for_o man_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o 3._o if_o christian_a faith_n be_v
what_o be_v the_o notorious_a tradition_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n i_o that_o search_v after_o it_o in_o all_o the_o book_n that_o i_o can_v get_v can_v scarce_o give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o much_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n nay_o no_o universal_a tradition_n at_o all_o be_v notorious_a to_o most_o christian_n much_o less_o to_o all_o the_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o most_o in_o england_n what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o abassian_o syrian_n armenian_n greek_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o italian_n french_a spaniard_n german_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v notorious_a to_o scholar_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o to_o antiquary_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o other_o scholar_n here_o w._n i._o answer_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o to_o know_v some_o law_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v of_o importance_n 10._o to_o salvation_n 2._o that_o god_n shall_v have_v make_v a_o visible_a government_n imprudent_o who_o governor_n can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o revelation_n r._n b._n 1._o and_o how_o come_v import_v to_o be_v put_v instead_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n this_o be_v but_o fraud_n 2._o it_o be_v worth_a our_o diligent_a enquiry_n can_v we_o prevail_v with_o these_o man_n to_o open_v to_o we_o this_o mystery_n how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n without_o revelation_n i_o will_v abate_v my_o antagonist_n the_o answer_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o will_v but_o be_v entreat_v to_o answer_v i_o this_o one_o question_n it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v by_o no_o promise_n of_o christ_n no_o word_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o by_o any_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o miracle_n that_o we_o must_v know_v they_o to_o be_v our_o governor_n i_o confess_v i_o can_v know_v without_o revelation_n that_o they_o claim_v such_o authority_n as_o any_o traitor_n or_o usurper_n may_v do_v but_o that_o they_o have_v such_o authority_n it_o be_v pass_v my_o reach_n to_o conjecture_v which_o way_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v without_o revelation_n ☞_o but_o i_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o remember_v this_o in_o all_o our_o further_a dispute_n with_o they_o that_o they_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o revelation_n by_o scripture_n spirit_n miracle_n or_o tradition_n make_v know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v know_v this_o before_o we_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n or_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o must_v know_v it_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o another_o difficulty_n here_o seem_v insuperable_a viz._n see_v this_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o revelation_n it_o can_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o if_o so_o how_o be_v all_o other_o faith_n resolve_v into_o it_o ☞_o and_o how_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o which_o be_v no_o belief_n call_v our_o implicit_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v no_o man_n be_v save_v that_o can_v unriddle_v all_o these_o contradiction_n next_o i_o further_o note_v r._n b._n that_o if_o he_o lie_v the_o sufficiency_n on_o the_o respect_n to_o all_o man_n various_a capacity_n of_o receive_v 11._o the_o notice_n than_o they_o can_v never_o know_v who_o be_v heretic_n but_o if_o they_o lay_v it_o on_o a_o general_a publication_n than_o all_o or_o almost_o all_o man_n be_v heretic_n be_v unavoidable_o ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n so_o publish_v to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o he_o judge_v of_o no_o man_n conscience_n ans._n but_o do_v not_o they_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o burn_v they_o and_o depose_v prince_n for_o not_o exterminate_v they_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a 1._o that_o such_o as_o acknowledge_v themselves_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o infallible_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o reject_v they_o as_o error_n give_v i_o ground_n to_o presume_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n ans._n 1._o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o you_o also_o be_v infallible_a in_o believe_v his_o church_n but_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v deceive_v and_o deceiver_n that_o call_v themselves_o infallible_a 2._o but_o if_o your_o belief_n in_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a must_v all_o other_o be_v heretic_n and_o be_v burn_v that_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o your_o degree_n of_o knowledge_n or_o self-conceitedness_n 3._o just_o now_o you_o say_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n need_v no_o revelation_n to_o make_v they_o know_v and_o now_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o your_o belief_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o slippery_a be_v your_o foundation_n 4._o but_o what_o mean_v that_o hard_a word_n the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v a_o true_a church_n either_o you_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o a_o particular_a church_n if_o the_o former_a why_o speak_v you_o so_o sneak_o and_o do_v not_o speak_v out_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o christ_n have_v on_o earth_n which_o assertion_n we_o abhor_v and_o despair_v of_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o if_o the_o latter_a what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o whether_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n any_o more_o than_o whether_o ephesus_n thessalonica_n or_o such_o other_o be_v so_o 5._o but_o to_o leave_v your_o parenthesis_n what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o that_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o five_o hundred_o among_o we_o that_o ever_o read_v your_o council_n nor_o know_v one_o of_o many_o thing_n propound_v by_o you_o to_o be_v such_o and_o be_v all_o these_o now_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n how_o long_o will_v that_o be_v their_o security_n if_o the_o burn_a and_o exterminate_v religion_n shall_v prevail_v and_o be_v it_o my_o hard_a fate_n to_o become_v a_o heretic_n more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o neighbour_n because_o i_o have_v read_v your_o council_n when_o they_o have_v not_o then_o i_o will_v counsel_v all_o that_o love_v not_o to_o be_v burn_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o meddle_v with_o such_o council_n i_o have_v oft_o read_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n you_o judge_v it_o for_o unlicensed_a man_n to_o read_v god_n word_n and_o of_o many_o that_o have_v be_v burn_v for_o it_o and_o its_o consequent_n and_o how_o you_o account_v it_o the_o way_n to_o heresy_n but_o i_o have_v not_o oft_o before_o read_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o read_v your_o decree_n or_o to_o know_v all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propound_v for_o he_o that_o know_v they_o all_o must_v have_v a_o very_a ready_a commandable_a faith_n such_o as_o can_v believe_v in_o despite_n of_o sense_n reason_n scripture_n and_o tradition_n to_o escape_v the_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v you_o not_o inexorable_a executioner_n when_o it_o come_v next_o to_o the_o burn_a of_o dissenter_n that_o you_o will_v spare_v all_o that_o confess_v not_o that_o they_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v by_o your_o church_n yea_o though_o they_o take_v not_o their_o parish-priest_n that_o tell_v it_o they_o to_o be_v infallible_a especial_o if_o they_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o common_a liar_n or_o one_o that_o hold_v that_o lie_a for_o man_n good_a be_v a_o venial_a sin_n or_o none_o w._n i._n 2._o such_o as_o oppose_v what_o all_o visible_a church_n have_v most_o notorious_o practise_v and_o believe_v as_o divine_a truth_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v i_o may_v safe_o presume_v to_o be_v heretic_n 12._o r._n b._n 1._o no_o o●…dipus_n can_v tell_v whether_o while_n here_o refer_v to_o believe_v or_o to_o oppose_v if_o to_o the_o latter_a than_o neither_o abassine_n armenian_n greek_n or_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n for_o they_o oppose_v not_o such_o point_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v whatever_o their_o forefather_n do_v for_o they_o have_v themselves_o so_o many_o partner_n as_o derogate_v from_o the_o pretend_a universality_n of_o the_o adversary_n but_o if_o by_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n you_o mean_v all_o except_o themselves_o or_o if_o the_o word_n while_n relate_v to_o believe_v than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v characterise_v by_o you_o for_o certain_a heretic_n for_o i_o defy_v impudence_n itself_o in_o challenge_v it_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o universal_a
the_o cause_n in_o name_v integral_n for_o those_o be_v not_o accident_n ans._n 1._o my_o affirm_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v as_o much_o a_o accident_n as_o a_o leprosy_n be_v to_o a_o man_n do_v not_o make_v i_o forget_v that_o i_o be_v confute_v his_o assertion_n that_o all_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v institute_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o or_o indeed_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o it_o for_o that_o be_v his_o say_n and_o though_o integral_n be_v not_o accident_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o be_v this_o hard_a to_o see_v and_o 2._o by_o his_o now_o put_v in_o the_o word_n institute_v he_o will_v make_v the_o reader_n think_v that_o i_o have_v grant_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v institute_v by_o christ._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o accident_n to_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o if_o true_a be_v essential_a to_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o church_n if_o false_a be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o whether_o true_a or_o false_a it_o will_v never_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o what_o work_n will_v interest_n and_o error_n make_v if_o so_o than_o every_o error_n and_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n for_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v perpetual_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o truth_n only_o and_o obey_v all_o his_o command_n without_o sin_v if_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n never_o have_v nor_o have_v sin_n or_o error_n i_o answer_v 1._o if_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n have_v but_o a_o essential_a part_n in_o their_o account_n that_o be_v their_o suppose_a head_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n to_o pass_v by_o peter_n deny_v christ_n dissuade_v he_o from_o suffer_v till_o he_o hear_v get_v behind_o i_o satan_n mat._n 16._o his_o dissemble_a gal._n 2._o sure_a marcellinus_n sinful_o offer_v incense_n to_o a_o idol_n and_o honorius_n and_o tiberius_n sin_v and_o it_o be_v some_o sin_n in_o those_o pope_n that_o defile_v wife_n and_o maid_n at_o the_o apostolic_a door_n and_o that_o be_v whoremonger_n and_o come_v in_o by_o whore_n and_o poison_n and_o that_o be_v condemn_v as_o simonist_n heretic_n incarnate_a devil_n perjure_a murderer_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o by_o council_n 2._o if_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v some_o error_n or_o sin_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n but_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n have_v etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o 1._o joh._n 1._o and_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o jam._n 3._o 2._o etc._n etc._n 2._o why_o then_o do_v he_o accuse_v we_o for_o separate_v from_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v as_o certain_o unchurch_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v such_o as_o aforesaid_a or_o the_o council_n sin_v that_o condemn_v they_o as_o such_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o either_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o pisa_n err_v and_o sin_v which_o decree_v that_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v condemn_v and_o depose_v he_o and_o that_o this_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n or_o else_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n err_v and_o sin_v that_o say_v the_o contrary_n and_o so_o of_o other_o instance_n 3._o but_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o argument_n false_a already_o so_o his_o consequence_n that_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v institute_v for_o perpetuity_n be_v essential_a and_o the_o deny_v destructive_a of_o the_o essence_n will_v not_o follow_v but_o on_o two_o supposition_n 1._o that_o such_o institution_n be_v not_o only_a no_o accident_n but_o no_o integral_n 2._o that_o every_o command_v truth_n be_v essential_a which_o be_v both_o false_a for_o else_o the_o institution_n may_v be_v essential_a and_o yet_o not_o the_o believe_a it_o such_o be_v essential_a and_o he_o confess_v that_o such_o belief_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o every_o member_n nor_o can_v he_o tell_v to_o how_o many_o nor_o to_o who_o add_v esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la if_o he_o say_v to_z as_o many_o as_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 1._o then_o if_o none_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n it_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o then_o if_o any_o one_o sin_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o church_n against_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n the_o church_n be_v nullify_v if_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o know_v how_o many_o must_v believe_v it_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la than_o no_o man_n can_v know_v whether_o the_o church_n be_v nullify_v or_o not_o he_o say_v pag._n 6●…_n so_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o it_o by_o all_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v 11._o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v they_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o when_o so_o propound_v hinder_v they_o from_o be_v part_n ans._n 1._o still_o this_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n how_o far_o and_o in_o who_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o this_o unchurch_v every_o person_n that_o err_v and_o sin_v against_o any_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n yet_o this_o same_o man_n say_v pag._n 36._o of_o his_o explication_n whatsoever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a etc._n etc._n and_o do_v the_o wilful_o ignorant_a acknowledge_v it_o reconcile_v these_o if_o you_o can_v 2._o this_o unchurch_v your_o whole_a church_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v even_o in_o express_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n thrice_o together_o in_o 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v communicate_v with_o the_o cup_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o even_o to_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o ourselves_o any_o grave_a image_n nor_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o nor_o worship_n it_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v public_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o that_o bishop_n shall_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o flock_n etc._n etc._n and_o you_o err_v and_o sin_n after_o this_o sufficient_a proposal_n pag._n 36._o i_o have_v give_v several_a instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o indian_n american_n the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o their_o own_o convert_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o christianity_n or_o salvation_n to_o which_o his_o answer_n be_v very_o remarkable_a viz._n i_o never_o say_v that_o all_o particular_a person_n or_o community_n be_v oblige_v to_o have_v a_o express_a belief_n or_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n supremacy_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o neither_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la nor_o praecepti_fw-la it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o believe_v it_o implicit_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o all_o those_o who_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n of_o those_o pastor_n upon_o earth_n that_o then_o they_o obstinate_o reject_v not_o his_o authority_n ans._n there_o be_v some_o moderation_n in_o this_o though_o it_o utter_o overthrow_v their_o cause_n 1._o this_o full_o prove_v that_o the_o poor_a abassine_n armenian_n and_o such_o other_o for_o all_o the_o popish_a accusation_n of_o they_o be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n for_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o supremacy_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o and_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n 2._o this_o make_v out_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n to_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a than_o the_o receive_n of_o every_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o tradition_n no●…_n than_o the_o receive_n e._n g._n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o all_o be_v essential_o necessary_a say_v they_o when_o sufficient_o propound_v 3._o this_o undeceive_v we_o that_o think_v their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o christianity_n must_v necessary_o be_v
constitute_v the_o essence_n and_o shall_v i_o obey_v a_o trifler_n so_o far_o as_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o more_o syllogism_n for_o this_o §_o 8._o but_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o protestant_n profess_v not_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o i_o prove_v it_o thus_o those_o that_o profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_n all_o again_o and_o then_o deny_v the_o minor_n i_o prove_v the_o minor_a by_o several_a argument_n 1._o all_o that_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n our_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n and_o love_n to_o he_o and_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o all_o his_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o holy_a scripture_n with_o willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o these_o law_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a and_o with_o repentance_n for_o all_o know_a sin_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o which_o i_o prove_v by_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_v form_n again_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v leave_v out_o when_o i_o cite_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n itself_o viz_o jo●…_n 3._o 16._o 17._o mark_v 16_o 16._o heb._n 5._o 9_o rom._n 8._o 28._o 1._o act._n 26._o 18._o and_o after_o all_o this_o what_o be_v it_o that_o he_o deny_v why_o this_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o scripture_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n of_o form_n that_o sly_o put_v in_o having_n willingness_n instead_o of_o profess_v it_o when_o he_o see_v and_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o what_o say_v man_n have_v which_o god_n only_o know_v but_o what_o they_o pro●…ess_n that_o we_o dispute_v of_o and_o whether_o we_o profess_v such_o willingness_n to_o understand_v if_o our_o word_n our_o oath_n and_o all_o our_o book_n and_o confession_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n will_v not_o prove_v it_o let_v this_o man_n word_n go_v for_o a_o disproof_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o transubstantiation_n reason_v where_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v §_o 9_o but_o he_o add_v a_o reason_n because_o else_o they_o will_v take_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o not_o follow_v novel_a int●…pretations_n and_o private_a judgement_n answ._n this_o cant_n must_v delude_v the_o ignorant_a that_o never_o read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o know_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o do_v not_o we_o profess_v to_o prefer_v that_o which_o be_v most_o ancient_a before_o that_o which_o be_v novel_a but_o these_o man_n must_v have_v we_o e._n g._n believe_v that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n which_o a_o sect_n late_o and_o sacrilegious_o introduce_v or_o else_o we_o have_v a_o novel_a and_o private_a interpretation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n when_o the_o most_o brazen_a face_v of_o they_o can_v deny_v that_o their_o own_o way_n herein_o be_v novel_a and_o the_o contrary_a as_o old_a as_o christ_n institution_n and_o that_o they_o be_v singular_a as_o differ_v from_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n upon_o earth_n the_o same_o i_o may_v say_v of_o most_o other_o of_o our_o difference_n 2._o when_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n write_v a_o commentary_n on_o the_o bible_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o exposition_n of_o it_o how_o little_a of_o the_o bible_n have_v general_a council_n expound_v if_o you_o mean_v not_o they_o what_o mean_v you_o sure_o all_o your_o laity_n have_v not_o expound_v it_o nor_o all_o your_o clergy_n yea_o their_o commentary_n yea_o and_o translation_n fight_v with_o one_o another_o where_o be_v your_o universal_a commentary_n if_o you_o have_v such_o a_o work_n will_v your_o talk_n make_v we_o ignorant_a that_o papist_n be_v not_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o if_o it_o be_v council_n you_o mean_v which_o of_o they_o be_v it_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o why_o that_o at_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o pisa_n or_o that_o at_o florence_n or_o the_o later●…ne_a that_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la contradict_v they_o the_o first_o and_o second_o at_o ephesus_n or_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n which_o contradict_v the_o first_o indeed_o and_o the_o second_o profess_o the_o 28_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n or_o the_o pope_n that_o abhor_v it_o the_o general_a council_n at_o ariminum_n syrmium_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o the_o world_n be_v say_v to_o groan_v to_o find_v itself_o turn_v arrian_n shall_v we_o at_o the_o 2d_o council_z of_o ephesus_z have_v follow_v the_o great_a number_n when_o there_o be_v not_o one_o refuser_n of_o eutychianism_n save_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o binnius_n say_v that_o sola_fw-la navicula_fw-la petri_n only_a peter_n ship_n escape_v drown_v do_v rome_n follow_v the_o most_o when_o melch._n canus_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v fight_v against_o the_o roman_a privilege_n be_v it_o a_o convince_a way_n to_o have_v such_o a_o pope_n as_o eugenius_n four_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o also_o be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o church_n or_o general_n council_n and_o to_o say_v you_o do_v not_o receive_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n because_o you_o take_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n when_o you_o have_v blind_v we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v a_o domineer_a sect_n that_o live_v not_o by_o the_o word_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o your_o decretal_n to_o be_v the_o church_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n that_o be_v against_o you_o to_o be_v novelty_n and_o your_o many_o novelty_n to_o be_v all_o the_o ancient_a truth_n such_o as_o pet._n moulin_n de_fw-fr novitate_fw-la papismi_fw-la have_v lay_v open_a by_o that_o time_n we_o may_v think_v that_o the_o church_n want_v a_o essential_a art●…ole_n of_o christianity_n which_o take_v not_o all_o the_o pope_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o see_v this_o be_v the_o great_a damn_v charge_n against_o the_o protestant_n faith_n i_o pray_v you_o tell_v we_o next_o 1._o do_v all_o the_o christian_a church_n want_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o christianity_n in_o all_o those_o age_n before_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v they_o any_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o exposition_n have_v they_o beside_o each_o church_n pastor_n for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n and_o what_o exposition_n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v save_v about_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o easter_n day_n or_o such_o thing_n that_o indeed_o be_v deliver_v not_o as_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o tradition_n of_o rule_n of_o order_n and_o what_o exposition_n make_v any_o of_o the_o old_a general_n council_n save_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o person_n and_o will_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n policy_n which_o suarez_n de_fw-fr legi●…_n say_v god_n make_v no_o law_n for_o where_o be_v their_o commentary_n 3._o where_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o commentary_n that_o the_o father_n agree_v in_o though_o the_o trent-oath_n be_v that_o you_o will_v not_o exp●…nd_v the_o scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o father_n consent_n your_o writer_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o who_o work_n be_v come_v to_o we_o for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n be_v millenaries_n dionys._n petavius_n have_v gather_v the_o word_n of_o arrian_n doctrine_n from_o most_o of_o they_o lib._n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la till_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a yea_o that_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o anti-arrians_a even_o athanassus_fw-la himself_o supposit●…_n be_v for_o three_o god_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n be_v three_o name_n but_o one_o in_o essence_n that_o be_v in_o specie_fw-la so_o be_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n when_o your_o doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o justin_n clem._n alexander_n dionysius_n alexand._n talianus_fw-la tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n eysebius_fw-la and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o more_o teach_v heresy_n and_o chrysostom_n basil_n and_o many_o other_o that_o we_o hope_v have_v be_v christian_n be_v note_v as_o fautor_n of_o origen_n and_o even_o many_o of_o the_o martyr_n be_v heretic_n when_o through_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n senior_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n theodosius_n junior_n valentinian_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o constantius_n and_o valens_n etc._n etc._n of_o
his_o shameful_a reformation_n of_o syllogism_n and_o pretence_n of_o logical_a form_n sect._n 6._o he_o deny_v protestant_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n i_o prove_v it_o his_o silly_a cavil_n at_o the_o form_n of_o the_o argument_n sect._n 7._o protestant_n profess_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n prove_v his_o cavil_n shame_v sect._n 8._o his_o oft_o repeat_v reason_n confute_v of_o not_o receive_v the_o church_n exposition_n sect._n 9_o the_o novelty_n and_o discord_n of_o popery_n the_o confusion_n in_o council_n sect._n 10._o my_o second_o argument's_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o essential_o the_o popish_a faith_n explain_v sect._n 12._o my_o three_o argument_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v with_o they_o too_o little_a and_o yet_o a_o insufficient_a proposal_n make_v christianity_n itself_o unnecessary_a sect._n 12._o he_o give_v up_o his_o cause_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a belief_n sect._n 13._o my_o four_o argument_n his_o ridiculous_a deny_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n sect._n 14._o the_o minor_a prove_v all_o protestant_n as_o such_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n ergo_fw-la sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n he_o what_o miracle_n believe_v in_o the_o pope_n do_v sect._n 15._o he_o have_v no_o way_n to_o deny_v that_o protestant_n profess_v true_a faith_n but_o by_o his_o impudent_a deny_v 1._o that_o we_o profess_v to_o love_v god_n 2._o and_o that_o we_o feel_v that_o we_o do_v love_v he_o sect._n 20._o my_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n confound_v he_o sect._n 21._o scripture_n sufficiency_n sect._n 22._o my_o three_o argument_n and_o his_o shameful_a answer_n sect._n 25._o my_o four_o argument_n prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o our_o church_n not_o only_o as_o christian_a but_o as_o without_o popery_n ten_o sub-argument_n for_o that_o 1_o from_o the_o twenty-eighth_a canon_n of_o conc._n calce_v 2._o from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n against_o heretic_n sect._n 28._o 3._o from_o tradition_n prove_v 4._o from_o church_n never_o subject_a to_o rome_n his_o citation_n brief_o confute_v s●…ct_n 30._o 5._o from_o the_o non-subjection_n even_o of_o the_o imperial_a church_n sect._n 32._o 6._o from_o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v testimony_n sect._n 33._o 7._o from_o their_o confession_n aen._n silvius_n reynerius_n canus_n binnius_n vindicate_v sect._n 38._o 8._o phocas_n give_v the_o primacy_n to_o boniface_n sect._n 39_o 9_o their_o liturgy_n new_a sect._n 40._o twelve_o instance_n of_o new_a article_n of_o the_o papist_n faith_n which_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_n s●…ct_n 42._o the_o ten_o argument_n he_o yield_v the_o cause_n in_o sense_n s●…ct_n 43._o notable_a testimony_n unanswered_a s●…ct_n 44._o papist_n differ_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la sect._n 47._o what_o heretic_n be_v or_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n full_o open_v his_o shameful_a exclaim_n against_o i_o for_o distinguish_v sect._n 48._o fifty_o six_o of_o philastrius_n heresy_n name_v many_o be_v small_a matter_n and_o many_o notorious_a certain_a truth_n sect._n 49._o the_o woeful_a work_n of_o hereticate_a council_n sect._n 50._o council_n hereticated_a pope_n and_o one_o another_o almost_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n hereticate_v one_o another_o sect._n 55._o his_o reason_n answer_v for_o unchurch_v all_o heretic_n sect._n 60._o their_o doctrine_n of_o sufficient_a proposal_n fullier_n confute_v and_o their_o hereticate_a and_o unchurch_v themselves_o evince_v mr._n johnson_n alias_o terret_n explication_n of_o seven_o term_n of_o our_o question_n examine_v and_o his_o confusion_n manifest_v chap._n i._n question_v 1_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n 1_o w._n j._n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v all_o those_o visible_a assembly_n congregation_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o unity_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o external_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o and_o in_o dependence_n of_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n r._n b._n qu._n 1._o whether_o you_o exclude_v not_o all_o those_o convert_v among_o infidel_n that_o never_o have_v external_a communion_n nor_o be_v member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n of_o which_o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n to_o to_o be_v constitute_v w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n in_o voto_fw-la or_o quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o that_o particular_a church_n actual_o which_o shall_v or_o may_v be_v design_v for_o they_o by_o that_o pastor_n to_o be_v include_v in_o my_o definition_n r._n b._n you_o see_v then_o that_o your_o definition_n signify_v nothing_o no_o man_n know_v your_o meaning_n by_o they_o w._n j._n you_o shall_v present_o see_v that_o your_o exception_n signify_v less_o than_o nothing_o r._n b._n 1._o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o consist_v only_o of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o after_o you_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n w._n j._n i_o make_v those_o convert_a infidel_n visible_a assembly_n as_o my_o definition_n speak_v though_o not_o actual_a member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n for_o though_o every_o particular_a visible_a church_n be_v a_o assembly_n of_o christian_n yet_o every_o assembly_n of_o christian_n be_v not_o a_o particular_a visible_a church_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o you_o misconceive_v r._n b._n 1._o will_v any_o man_n have_v understand_v that_o by_o visible_a assembly_n the_o man_n have_v not_o mean_v only_o churches_n but_o also_o family_n school_n city_n &_o c_o 2._o do_v he_o not_o here_o express_o deny_v all_o those_o person_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o member_n of_o some_o other_o visible_a assembly_n and_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o pilgrim_n a_o hermit_n or_o if_o one_o or_o many_o be_v cast_v upon_o a_o uninhabited_a coast_n and_o if_o any_o be_v member_n of_o no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o merchant_n ambassador_n to_o infidel_n etc._n etc._n when_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o this_o unchristen_v or_o unchurch_v they_o r._n b._n 2._o you_o now_o mention_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n as_o sufficient_a which_o in_o your_o description_n or_o definition_n you_o do_v not_o w._n j._n be_o i_o oblige_v to_o mention_v all_o thing_n in_o my_o definition_n which_o i_o express_v after_o in_o answer_v your_o exception_n ans._n all_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o notify_a definition_n r._n b._n 3._o if_o to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n will_v serve_v then_o inexistence_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n church_n prove_v no_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o because_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la diminuens_fw-la but_o the_o contrary_n see_v then_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n inexistence_n in_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o inexistence_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n why_o do_v you_o not_o only_o mention_v it_o in_o your_o definition_n but_o confine_v the_o church_n to_o it_o w._n j._n i_o make_v they_o actual_o inexistent_a in_o some_o visible_a assembly_n according_a to_o my_o definition_n and_o in_o voto_fw-la only_o in_o a_o particular_a church_n now_o every_o particular_a family_n or_o neighbourhood_n nay_o two_o or_o three_o gather_v in_o prayer_n be_v a_o actual_a assembly_n r._n b._n strange_a doctrine_n so_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o our_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n that_o we_o be_v member_n of_o a_o christian_a city_n or_o village_n or_o fair_a or_o market_n or_o some_o meeting_n and_o so_o all_o christian_n that_o live_v solitary_o in_o wilderness_n or_o among_o turk_n or_o heathen_n be_v all_o unchristened_a and_o damn_a w._n j._n st._n hierome_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la plebs_fw-la unita_fw-la episcopo_fw-la in_o this_o consist_v your_o fallacy_n that_o you_o esteem_v none_o to_o be_v actual_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unless_o they_o be_v actual_a member_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n which_o i_o deny_v r._n b._n i_o think_v very_o it_o have_v be_v i_o that_o be_v deny_v it_o all_o this_o while_n this_o be_v dispu●…ing_v in_o the_o dark_a will_v you_o say_v that_o you_o mean_v in_o voto_fw-la who_o can_v understand_v you_o then_o when_o you_o say_v they_o must_v be_v of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o mean_v that_o they_o need_v not_o be_v of_o any_o but_o wish_v they_o be_v or_o purpose_n to_o be_v so_o w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o they_o be_v actual_o of_o some_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n of_o christian_n though_o it_o be_v no_o particular_a church_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o be_v a_o new_a exposition_n of_o solomon_n vae_fw-la soli_fw-la woe_n to_o he_o that_o be_v alone_o for_o he_o be_v unchristened_a by_o it_o or_o
be_v no_o spirit_n but_o god_n and_o the_o anima_fw-la mundi_fw-la and_o say_v that_o these_o be_v immaterial_a and_o never_o the_o more_o believe_v that_o angel_n or_o soul_n be_v spirit_n and_o no_o man_n can_v reasonable_o imagine_v that_o omnis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la do_v include_v omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la or_o that_o w._n i_n est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la so_o one_o may_v say_v that_o all_o that_o be_v sanctify_v shall_v be_v glorify_v and_o yet_o not_o believe_v that_o peter_n paul_n yea_o or_o christ_n be_v holy_a of_o this_o sort_n of_o knowledge_n i_o mention_v that_o which_o be_v a_o belief_n of_o no_o more_o but_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v god_n veracity_n that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o so_o that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a when_o yet_o one_o that_o confess_v this_o deny_v all_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v his_o word_n and_o believe_v rather_o mahomet_n amida_n or_o confutius_n to_o have_v be_v god_n messenger_n or_o the_o ancient_a oracle_n at_o delphos_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v be_v his_o word_n but_o the_o confuse_a head_n of_o w._n i._n confound_v several_a of_o these_o different_a sort_n and_o because_o he_o think_v that_o he_o may_v handsome_o call_v a_o mere_a general_a knowledge_n or_o faith_n confuse_a therefore_o he_o confound_v the_o true_a confuse_a faith_n with_o the_o general_n which_o be_v easy_o distinguish_v and_o first_o he_o call_v for_o my_o proof_n that_o a_o mere_a general_a belief_n be_v no_o belief_n at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n though_o a_o confuse_a faith_n may_v i_o prove_v it_o 1._o where_o there_o be_v no_o intellectual_a conception_n of_o the_o particular_n there_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n but_o where_o there_o be_v only_o a_o conception_n of_o a_o general_a proposition_n there_o be_v no_o intellectual_a conception_n of_o the_o particular_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a and_o the_o minor_a no_o less_o 2._o where_o the_o particular_a object_n be_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v there_o be_v not_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o know_v or_o believe_v that_o object_n for_o the_o object_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o act_n but_o where_o there_o be_v only_o a_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o general_a object_n there_o the_o particular_a object_n be_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o be_v not_o a_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n which_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o contradictory_n but_o a_o mere_a belief_n of_o the_o general_n proposition_n may_v consist_v i_o h_o the_o contradictory_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o particular_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o he_o come_v upon_o i_o with_o some_o instance_n so_o word_v as_o may_v deceive_v the_o ignorant_a 1._o say_v he_o do_v not_o this_o proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la contain_v the_o substance_n of_o these_o truth_n equus_n vivit_fw-la leo_fw-la vivit_fw-la aquila_n vivit_fw-la &_o c_o answ._n no_o sure_o unless_o by_o substance_n you_o mean_v not_o the_o other_o proposition_n but_o somewhat_o else_o what_o you_o list_v for_o it_o contain_v not_o the_o very_a subject_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o equus_n leo_n aquila_n in_o be_v and_o that_o they_o be_v animalia_fw-la may_v not_o a_o man_n that_o never_o hear_v or_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o creature_n as_o a_o eagle_n lion_n etc._n etc._n no_o more_o than_o a_o unicorn_n or_o phoenix_n yet_o know_v that_o omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la 2._o he_o say_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_a express_o i_o believe_v in_o confuso_fw-la all_o that_o be_v in_o genesis_n etc._n etc._n answ._n yes_o if_o in_o confuso_fw-la be_v terminus_fw-la diminuens_fw-la to_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n by_o mere_a believe_v the_o first_o you_o do_v not_o actual_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o genesis_n or_o exodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o your_o proposition_n say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o book_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o believe_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o believe_v not_o tobit_n judith_n bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n to_o be_v true_a because_o i_o believe_v they_o not_o to_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o may_v other_o by_o genesis_n exodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o heretic_n of_o old_a deny_v many_o book_n and_o as_o infidel_n may_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n 3._o say_v he_o be_v not_o a_o express_a knowledge_n of_o the_o genus_fw-la a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o species_n under_o it_o and_o so_o the_o species_n of_o the_o individua_fw-la answ._n yes_o if_o by_o confuse_a knowledge_n you_o mean_v no_o knowledge_n of_o they_o it_o be_v no_o true_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o 4._o but_o he_o say_v that_o my_o word_n not_o know_v whether_o you_o be_v animal_n or_o cadaver_n be_v a_o contradictory_n proposition_n answ._n say_v you_o so_o may_v not_o i_o see_v you_o asleep_o and_o think_v that_o you_o be_v dead_a do_v this_o proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la include_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o wight_n in_o be_v as_o w._n i._n or_o n._n n_o or_o that_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a or_o that_o it_o be_v real_o a_o man_n and_o not_o a_o horse_n that_o be_v so_o call_v any_o more_o than_o that_o bucephalus_n be_v a_o man_n yet_o do_v he_o back_o these_o absurdity_n with_o advise_v i_o to_o a_o little_a more_o heed_n to_o what_o i_o write_v note_v that_o page_n 9_o he_o assert_v that_o the_o object_n of_o implicit_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o school_n be_v nothing_o save_o particular_a truth_n contain_v in_o substance_n under_o some_o general_a proposition_n so_o that_o they_o be_v neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v distinct_o and_o express_o yet_o in_o confuso_fw-la they_o be_v by_o the_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o their_o general_a proposition_n answ._n but_o there_o be_v a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n which_o be_v actual_a of_o the_o be_v of_o they_o though_o not_o distinct_a not_o fit_a or_o ripe_a for_o word_n to_o utter_v it_o this_o be_v different_a from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o mere_a general_n which_o be_v indeed_o no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o particular_n that_o any_o such_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o general_n at_o all_o he_o next_o come_v to_o expound_v his_o word_n that_o faith_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_v explicit_o 4._o or_o implicit_o that_o be_v now_o some_o thing_n explicit_o and_o some_o thing_n implicit_o when_o as_o i_o ask_v he_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n in_o which_o we_o must_v unite_v who_o will_v have_v expect_v such_o a_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o thing_n reveal_v and_o a_o particular_a belief_n of_o some_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o belief_n of_o all_o particular_n as_o be_v no_o real_a actual_a belief_n of_o some_o of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o actual_a belief_n of_o other_o some_o but_o be_v any_o man_n ever_o the_o near_a the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o mind_n by_o this_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o notice_n what_o the_o general_n be_v that_o must_v be_v believe_v he_o profess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o formal_a object_n only_o that_o be_v the_o veracity_n or_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n the_o revealer_n and_o what_o else_o it_o be_v whether_o that_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v be_v true_a or_o that_o all_o that_o the_o church_n declare_v to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o who_o we_o must_v take_v for_o that_o church_n etc._n etc._n he_o have_v not_o tell_v we_o and_o so_o have_v give_v a_o answer_n which_o be_v no_o answer_n 2._o nor_o have_v he_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o particular_n be_v that_o must_v be_v believe_v but_o we_o may_v know_v what_o faith_n it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o by_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v something_o we_o know_v not_o what_o or_o that_o it_o be_v somewhat_o in_o general_n and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a do_v this_o account_n satisfy_v themselves_o or_o do_v they_o look_v that_o it_o shall_v satisfy_v we_o will_v this_o distinguish_v their_o church_n from_o heretic_n or_o mahometan_n do_v not_o these_o believe_v somewhat_o in_o general_n and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a and_o do_v not_o heathen_n do_v the_o same_o if_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o christianity_n or_o concord_n why_o do_v they_o call_v we_o heretic_n be_v we_o not_o all_o of_o that_o faith_n which_o believe_v somewhat_o in_o general_n even_o that_o all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o somewhat_o be_v necessary_a though_o
we_o may_v not_o know_v what_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o they_o have_v a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o some_o article_n they_o can_v never_o be_v think_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n 5._o answ._n either_o he_o mean_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o question_n which_o must_v notify_v we_o from_o heretic_n and_o from_o other_o without_o and_o which_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o or_o some_o other_o faith_n if_o any_o other_o do_v he_o not_o wilful_o juggle_v and_o fly_v from_o answer_v when_o he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v if_o he_o mean_v the_o faith_n in_o question_n than_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n be_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n yea_o and_o all_o that_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o anathematise_v themselves_o yea_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o believe_v and_o tremble_v but_o one_o will_v think_v that_o pag._n 11_o he_o describe_v the_o necessary_a implicit_a faith_n when_o he_o say_v our_o ordinary_a sense_n be_v so_o to_o believe_v that_o point_n that_o we_o have_v no_o distinct_a or_o express_a knowledge_n 6._o of_o it_o but_o only_o a_o confuse_a understanding_n because_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la under_o this_o proposition_n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n answ._n 1._o but_o i_o must_v again_o repeat_v that_o here_o the_o word_n confuse_a be_v use_v but_o to_o confound_v this_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o any_o particular_a under_o that_o proposition_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v actual_o know_v in_o itself_o but_o only_o by_o a_o general_n knowledge_n or_o not_o d●…stinct_n this_o be_v true_o a_o impersect_n knowledge_n it_o be_v to_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n though_o not_o its_o form_n or_o individuation_n if_o i_o see_v something_o which_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o tree_n a_o steeple_n or_o a_o rock_n i_o very_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n itself_o but_o not_o the_o form_n of_o it_o if_o i_o see_v a_o book_n open_a at_o two-yard_n distance_n i_o see_v the_o letter_n distinct_o but_o not_o formal_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v if_o i_o see_v a_o clod_n of_o earth_n or_o a_o river_n i_o see_v much_o of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n but_o i_o discern_v not_o the_o sand_n or_o the_o drop_n as_o distinct_a part_n here_o something_o be_v know_v though_o the_o special_a or_o numerical_a difference_n much_o more_o some_o accident_n be_v unknown_a but_o in_o know_v w._n i_n general_a proposition_n only_o i_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n as_o shall_v yet_o be_v further_o manifest_v 2._o and_o mark_v what_o his_o general_a proposition_n be_v which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o 7._o implicit_a say_v viz._n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n either_o he_o real_o mean_v that_o this_o be_v the_o implicit_a faith_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v notifi●…d_v and_o which_o unit_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o distinguish_v they_o from_o those_o without_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o what_o do_v he_o but_o deceive_v his_o r●…ader_n if_o he_o do_v then_o as_o i_o say_v all_o christian_n heretic_n most_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n believe_v the_o first_o proposition_n viz._n that_o all_o be_v true_a that_o god_n reveal_v and_o protestant_n and_o papist_n and_o most_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n agree_v in_o the_o second_o the_o scripture-truth_n here_o then_o be_v a_o justification_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o far_o but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o mean_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v do_v they_o not_o hold_v it_o also_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v take_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o declarer_fw-la of_o this_o scripture-truth_n and_o also_o that_o tradition_n not_o write_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v believe_v must_v not_o both_o these_o make_v up_o their_o implicit_a faith_n if_o our_o general_a faith_n and_o they_o be_v the_o same_o what_o make_v they_o accuse_v we_o herein_o as_o they_o do_v but_o now_o pag._n 11._o he_o proceed_v to_o assault_v i_o with_o such_o reason_n as_o this_o no_o man_n know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o wit_n with_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a 8._o ergo_fw-la say_v i_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v now_o i_o proceed_v if_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v than_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v then_o further_o whoever_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n but_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v ergo_fw-la you_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n see_v you_o not_o how_o fair_a a_o thread_n you_o have_v spin_v or_o will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v a_o good_a christian_a if_o you_o will_v you_o may_v but_o no_o good_a christian_n will_v believe_v you_o answ._n the_o man_n seem_v in_o good_a sadness_n in_o all_o this_o childish_a play_n and_o must_v rome_n be_v thus_o uphold_v and_o must_v poor_a man_n faith_n and_o conscience_n be_v thus_o lay_v upon_o a_o game_n at_o cheat_a word_n no_o wonder_n that_o this_o hector_n will_v have_v nothing_o say_v in_o dispute_n but_o syllogism_n etc._n etc._n few_o lad_n and_o woman_n will_v unmask_v his_o pitiful_a deceit_n whether_o the_o great_a disputer_n see_v their_o vanity_n himself_o i_o know_v not_o but_o man_n at_o age_n that_o can_v speak_v and_o try_v sense_n will_v see_v that_o all_o this_o cant_n be_v but_o the_o sporting-equivocation_n of_o one_o syllable_n all_o this_o all_z be_v either_o a_o term_n of_o a_o mere_a general_a proposition_n e._n g._n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a here_o i_o believe_v what_o be_v predicate_v of_o this_o general_a word_n all_o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o true_a proposition_n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a or_o it_o signify_v the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n as_o in_o themselves_o know_v and_o so_o if_o the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n general_o express_v by_o the_o word_n all_o be_v not_o themselves_o know_v as_o such_o thing_n species_n or_o part_n it_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o to_o know_v that_o truth_n of_o the_o say_v general_a proposition_n and_o do_v not_o every_o novice_n in_o logic_n know_v this_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o belief_n as_o of_o knowledge_n he_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n who_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o divine_a revelation_n be_v true_a which_o heretic_n and_o heathen_n believe_v but_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o christian_a know_v to_o he_o or_o i_o know_v or_o believe_v all_o the_o particular_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o he_o believe_v not_o one_o of_o they_o beside_o that_o proposition_n itself_o which_o be_v find_v among_o the_o rest_n who_o believe_v but_o that_o general_a but_o yet_o he_o will_v justify_v his_o vanity_n by_o more_o instance_n pag._n 12_o he_o say_v when_o you_o profess_v in_o 9_o t●…e_a creed_n that_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a i_o demand_v do_v you_o believe_v as_o you_o profess_v if_o you_o do_v than_o you_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o many_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whereof_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n or_o which_o be_v whole_o unknown_a particular_o or_o distinct_o to_o you_o or_o by_o any_o other_o knowledge_n than_o as_o confuse_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n all._n ans._n 1._o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o thing_n of_o which_o many_o be_v unknown_a to_o ●…e_v be_v create_v by_o god_n this_o proposition_n i_o know_v and_o believe_v but_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o such_o i_o no_o further_o believe_v than_o i_o know_v if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o that_o they_o be_v if_o i_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o what_o they_o be_v that_o be_v if_o i_o have_v not_o a_o intellectual_a conception_n that_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o be_v for_o believe_v be_v indeed_o but_o a_o know_v by_o the_o medium_n of_o a_o testimony_n or_o revelation_n and_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o revealer_n i_o believe_v that_o god_n ma●…_n all_o that_o be_v about_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o i_o neither_o know_v nor_o actual_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n species_n or_o individual_a or_o
nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o you_o to_o do_v which_o you_o can_v do_v without_o come_v into_o the_o light_n it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o the_o papist_n divine_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o controversy_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v that_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n but_o mark_v that_o this_o be_v not_o then_o with_o they_o de_fw-mi fide_fw-la any_o point_n of_o faith_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o must_v be_v believe_v for_o their_o divine_n dispute_v not_o that_o which_o they_o take_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la i_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a and_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o not_o know_v a_o word_n that_o be_v in_o it_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n or_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o such_o a_o person_n 15._o he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v moral_o impossible_a for_o either_o such_o a_o person_n believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o and_o then_o according_a to_o all_o divine_n his_o faith_n can_v be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a or_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v he_o a_o christian_a or_o he_o believe_v it_o prudent_o by_o prudential_a motive_n of_o credibility_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o other_o save_o that_o though_o he_o know_v not_o by_o experience_n that_o christ_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o bible_n he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o he_o be_v profess_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n by_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o he_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n ans._n here_o be_v many_o thing_n worthy_a our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v a_o christian_a unless_o his_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o only_o in_o the_o object_n but_o his_o act_n and_o sure_o no_o man_n know_v what_o other_o man_n act_n of_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o their_o church_n be_v still_o invisible_a 2._o no_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o no_o man_n know_v whether_o another_o believe_v it_o not_o rash_o and_o imprudent_o yea_o whether_o he_o believe_v it_o at_o all_o therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o no_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v serve_v to_o free_v a_o man_n from_o this_o rashness_n imprudence_n and_o nullity_n of_o his_o christianity_n 1._o but_o why_o then_o have_v we_o not_o this_o general_n the_o church_n catholic_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o its_o authority_n before_o in_o the_o description_n of_o implicit_a or_o explicit_a faith_n 2._o be_v that_o man_n no_o christian_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o a_o single_a apostle_n and_o take_v not_o the_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v the_o eunuch_n convert_v by_o philip_n act._n 8._o or_o the_o jailor_n and_o lydia_n convert_v by_o paul_n act._n 16._o or_o the_o 3000_o convert_v by_o peter_n act._n 2._o receive_v faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o indian_n when_o convert_v by_o frumentius_n and_o edesus_fw-la or_o the_o abassian_a empire_n that_o till_o late_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretension_n or_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v use_v that_o argument_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o convert_v their_o hearer_n or_o that_o they_o always_o first_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o church_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o mean_v any_o single_a apostle_n or_o teacher_n hold_v to_o that_o and_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o you_o 3._o but_o authority_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a word_n and_o may_v deceive_v we_o maintain_v that_o a_o preserve_n and_o teach_v ministerial_a authority_n be_v usual_o needful_a to_o man_n conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v first_o believe_v by_o the_o hearer_n but_o a_o judge_a authority_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o scripture_n a_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n or_o not_o which_o determine_v by_o a_o sentence_n rather_o than_o teach_v by_o open_v that_o evidence_n which_o cause_v belief_n in_o the_o teacher_n himself_o this_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o man_n faith_n 4._o and_o what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v hear_v a_o preacher_n open_v the_o other_o reason_n of_o christianity_n without_o talk_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o shall_v hereupon_o believe_v or_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o a_o bible_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o christian_a nor_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o shall_v not_o perish_v and_o say_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o any_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v the_o roman_n believe_v rash_o and_o impudent_o and_o shall_v perish_v 4._o but_o it_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o enquiry_n can_v we_o possible_o find_v it_o out_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o 16._o know_v the_o church_n and_o its_o profession_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o act_n of_o necessary_a faith_n before_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v believe_v or_o what_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o our_o belief_n of_o this_o church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o faith_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v know_v before_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v believe_v and_o that_o in_o know_v the_o church_n we_o must_v know_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n call_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v that_o church_n must_v all_o these_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v or_o but_o one_o or_o two_o and_o which_o 1._o if_o the_o name_n be_v enough_o a_o man_n may_v know_v that_o a_o company_n of_o man_n be_v call_v christian_n or_o mahumetanes_n who_o know_v not_o at_o all_o what_o christianity_n or_o mahumetanism_n be_v you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v to_o trust_v in_o christ_n this_o they_o may_v do_v and_o not_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n or_o what_o he_o have_v do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o we_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o must_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n so_o they_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o not_o know_v what_o the_o word_n saviour_n signify_v or_o what_o christ_n ever_o do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o but_o if_o he_o mean_v here_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v believe_v god_n word_n must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n as_o define_v or_o know_v it_o in_o all_o its_o essence_n then_o 1._o how_o few_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o how_o will_v he_o know_v who_o they_o be_v 2._o and_o still_o the_o question_n recur_v what_o be_v it_o that_o must_v be_v particular_o believe_v to_o essentiate_v the_o church_n for_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o he_o can_v know_v that_o he_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v 3._o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v it_o seem_v he_o must_v know_v which_o be_v that_o church_n consider_v in_o existence_n as_o different_a from_o all_o heresy_n and_o other_o society_n but_o by_o this_o method_n our_o difficulty_n be_v multiply_v 1._o how_o shall_v i_o be_v sure_a that_o this_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v i_o in_o say_v that_o this_o and_o not_o that_o be_v god_n word_n be_v this_o by_o a_o act_n of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o divine_a faith_n if_o of_o knowledge_n what_o evidence_n prove_v it_o if_o of_o faith_n than_o i_o must_v believe_v god_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v he_o that_o be_v i_o must_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v his_o revelation_n and_o true_a that_o the_o roman
part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o next_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o jesuit_n turnbull_n against_o rob._n baronius_n maintain_v that_o revelation_n 6._o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o formal_a object_n 2._o and_o that_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la and_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v none_o formal_o to_o the_o latter_a he_o give_v no_o answer_n and_o to_o the_o first_o as_o bad_a as_o none_o viz._n that_o the_o heretic_n deny_v also_o the_o material_a object_n and_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o which_o he_o be_v oblige_v by_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o virtual_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v true_a ans._n but_o i_o again_o reply_n 1._o virtual_a be_v not_o actual_a 2._o it_o be_v no_o virtual_a denial_n that_o god_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o the_o proposer_n be_v true_a to_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v god_n word_n only_o prove_v that_o i_o break_v that_o obligation_n if_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o not_o at_o all_o that_o i_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o word_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v again_o this_o make_v all_o christian_n to_o be_v heretic_n past_a dispute_n for_o all_o christian_n receive_v not_o something_o or_o other_o small_a or_o great_a which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o belie●…e_v to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v you_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v by_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v no_o and_o so_o that_o your_o understanding_n have_v no_o sin_n you_o deceive_v yourself_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o you_o if_o yea_o then_o be_v you_o not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v god_n word_n if_o not_o oblige_v than_o your_o error_n be_v no_o sin_n so_o that_o you_o make_v every_o sinful_a error_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o proud_o deny_v that_o you_o have_v any_o sinful_a error_n lest_o you_o shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n i_o add_v that_o their_o church_n be_v constitute_v of_o man_n that_o sinful_o neglect_v some_o point_n of_o truth_n or_o other_o sufficient_o propose_v ergo_fw-la be_v it_o constitute_v of_o heretic_n 7._o to_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o whatever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v so_o believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o hereitck_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a but_o contradiction_n to_o what_o be_v know_v damn_v to_o they_o to_o be_v propound_v by_o those_o that_o have_v power_n to_o oblige_v they_o as_o be_v their_o lawful_a superior_n which_o make_v a_o heretic_n r._n b._n 1._o but_o still_o you_o agree_v not_o nor_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o 2._o by_o this_o we_o be_v all_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n for_o we_o believe_v all_o explicitly_a that_o be_v necssary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o all_o the_o rest_n implicit_o by_o a_o double_a implicit_a faith_n 1._o in_o god_n and_o our_o redeemer_n 2._o in_o the_o inspire_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n we_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o which_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v as_o god_n word_n 3._o yea_o and_o all_o that_o we_o know_v to_o be_v propound_v by_o any_o oblige_a superior_n for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o pope_n nor_o your_o contradictory_n council_n to_o be_v such_o my_o next_o qu._n 2._o be_v what_o mean_v you_o by_o sufficient_a proposal_n 8._o w._n i._n such_o as_o be_v sufficient_a among_o man_n in_o humanis_fw-la to_o oblige_v one_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o a_o king_n have_v exact_v such_o and_o such_o law_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tr●…dition_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o he_o take_v sufficiency_n respective_o to_o the_o promulgator_n viz._n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v for_o a_o king_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o publish_v his_o law_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o county_n but_o only_o to_o make_v such_o a_o publication_n of_o they_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o that_o man_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o they_o king_n send_v not_o schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v every_o man_n how_o to_o prove_v that_o his_o law_n be_v not_o counterfeit_v and_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o for_o the_o enact_v of_o they_o be_v a_o late_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o easy_o notify_v as_o near_o unto_o they_o and_o no_o other_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o they_o be_v require_v but_o such_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o obedience_n of_o they_o which_o belong_v to_o every_o man_n in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o if_o such_o a_o publication_n of_o god_n law_n be_v sufficient_a million_o that_o never_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o what_o christ_n be_v have_v such_o a_o sufficient_a publication_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o perhaps_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n where_o they_o dwell_v though_o they_o never_o hear_v it_o 2._o but_o when_o man_n have_v the_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o statute_n be_v make_v and_o such_o a_o book_n send_v from_o god_n this_o do_v not_o acquaint_v man_n what_o those_o statutesor_n that_o book_n contain_v sothat_o by_o this_o rule_n it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v that_o god_n make_v the_o bible_n without_o know_v what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o else_o he_o that_o be_v but_o tell_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o book_n be_v bind_v by_o that_o much_o to_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o 3._o but_o note_v the_o popish_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n w._n i._n tell_v we_o after_o the_o rest_n that_o we_o must_v know_v these_o thing_n reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o one_o that_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o church_n to_o know_v yet_o 1._o that_o he_o have_v a_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o he_o have_v authorize_v some_o man_n to_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n to_o judge_n that_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o 3._o that_o he_o have_v particular_o authorize_v they_o to_o judge_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o his_o revelation_n 4._o and_o to_o know_v who_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v this_o high_a tribunal_n to_o all_o the_o world_n viz._n for_o those_o of_o abassia_n that_o have_v not_o so_o much_o history_n as_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o such_o a_o man_n as_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o world_n till_o oviedo_n be_v send_v who_o tell_v it_o but_o to_o few_o can_v yet_o know_v that_o this_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v their_o judge_n and_o from_o they_o they_o must_v receive_v the_o gospel_n 5._o and_o to_o know_v that_o this_o universal_a tribunal_n be_v infallible_a before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o give_v they_o their_o infallibility_n alas_o must_v every_o poor_a infidel_n know_v all_o this_o before_o he_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n when_o we_o that_o live_v among_o they_o and_o read_v their_o law_n and_o doctrine_n can_v easy_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o pope_n who_o by_o general_a council_n be_v charge_v not_o only_o with_o murder_n adultery_n simony_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n but_o with_o heresy_n also_o or_o infidelity_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o general_a council_n who_o be_v accuse_v by_o pope_n and_o by_o other_o council_n of_o error_n heresy_n or_o schism_n 4._o but_o he_o add_v another_o way_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o 1._o if_o this_o will_v 9_o serve_v than_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n that_o believe_v no_o humane_a infallible_a tribunal_n over_o all_o the_o world_n much_o less_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v such_o a_o tribunal_n for_o we_o have_v notorious_a universal_a tradition_n deliver_v we_o all_o our_o religion_n 2._o but_o yet_o these_o be_v hard_a term_n for_o every_o poor_a heathen_a to_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o alas_o how_o shall_v the_o million_o of_o people_n through_o the_o world_n who_o know_v nothing_o that_o be_v many_o day_n journey_n from_o their_o house_n know_v
church_n do_v notorious_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n by_o the_o people_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o take_v you_o at_o your_o word_n nor_o call_v you_o heretic_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n assert_v by_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o your_o rule_n be_v false_a and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v know_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v hold_v some_o opinion_n of_o chronology_n or_o genealogy_n or_o cosmography_n as_o about_o cainan_n or_o the_o age_n of_o sem_fw-mi or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o artipode_n especial_o in_o the_o dismal_a nine_o century_n and_o if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o they_o take_v this_o point_n for_o a_o divine_a revelation_n believe_v the_o septuagint_n or_o some_o other_o mistranslation_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v before_o jeromes_n time_n this_o man_n so_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o err_v in_o so_o small_a a_o point_n be_v no_o heretic_n for_o so_o think_v for_o i_o will_v know_v of_o yourself_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o follower_n be_v not_o heretic_n for_o the_o septuagint_n be_v long_o take_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a long_v after_o by_o your_o universal_a roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o those_o text_n be_v god_n word_n which_o yet_o afterward_o you_o alter_v many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o alteration_n in_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o sixtus_n 5_o and_o clement_n 8_o all_o which_o be_v so_o many_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v that_o before_o take_v the_o other_o reading_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o you_o can_v make_v one_o thing_n god_n word_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n 5._o but_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o heresy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o we_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v and_o practise_v contrary_a to_o we_o which_o sure_o be_v notorious_a to_o very_a few_o at_o most_o and_o indeed_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o more_o because_o we_o dare_v not_o with_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o in_o former_a age_n r._n b._n be_v not_o the_o bible_n a_o public_a testimony_n and_o record_n and_o be_v universal_o receive_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n and_o yet_o abundance_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v not_o actual_o know_v or_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o your_o own_o church_n w._n j._n it_o be_v only_o a_o tradition_n that_o whatever_o be_v there_o deliver_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sentence_n 13._o contain_v in_o it_o when_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o many_o sense_n r._n b._n worse_o and_o worse_o still_o 1._o tradition_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v significant_a and_o intelligible_a or_o else_o it_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o defective_a than_o the_o common_a word_n of_o man_n this_o intelligible_a bible_n or_o word_n therefore_o deliver_v to_o we_o its_o own_o sense_n if_o not_o than_o council_n do_v not_o deliver_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o their_o own_o for_o god_n can_v speak_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o their_o word_n be_v no_o more_o plain_a than_o he_o yet_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a intelligible_a text_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o many_o of_o your_o church_n who_o you_o call_v not_o heretic_n yea_o your_o learned_a commentator_n differ_v and_o fight_v about_o their_o sense_n 2._o therefore_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o every_o sentence_n you_o do_v but_o fly_v and_o hide_v your_o fraud_n if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o they_o be_v in_o god_n own_o word_n but_o as_o expound_v by_o your_o church_n all_o christian_a ear_n shall_v abhor_v your_o blasphemy_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o that_o there_o be_v some_o text_n so_o difficult_a as_o that_o most_o christian_n can_v understand_v they_o or_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o various_a sense_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o be_v those_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v every_o man_n a_o heretic_n that_o err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o and_o it_o be_v perverse_a that_o you_o say_v of_o divers_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o a_o text_n may_v be_v expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n and_o context_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n if_o by_o that_o word_n you_o mean_v as_o be_v usual_a contrary_a to_o the_o harmony_n of_o christian_a necessary_a truth_n yea_o or_o contrary_a to_o any_o other_o truth_n whatever_o save_o that_o text_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o reason_n whether_o this_o man_n have_v give_v we_o any_o regardable_a notice_n at_o all_o what_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o or_o have_v not_o trifle_v and_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o heresy_n be_v i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o word_n signify_v election_n be_v use_v in_o the_o begin_n sometime_o for_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n divide_v from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 14._o church_n and_o christian_n be_v call_v a_o heresy_n by_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o christian_n the_o name_n signify_v any_o party_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o necessary_a thing_n from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o unmeet_a for_o their_o communion_n and_o gather_v themselves_o into_o divide_a society_n so_o that_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o church_n and_o make_v different_a sect_n or_o society_n therefore_o which_o separate_v from_o and_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o gross_a sort_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n schism_n than_o be_v low_a signify_v either_o the_o contentious_a make_n of_o division_n within_o a_o church_n without_o separate_n from_o it_o or_o else_o the_o break_n of_o one_o church_n into_o many_o without_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o such_o schism_n only_o and_o hence_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o many_o other_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o sometime_o use_v more_o cautelous_o in_o a_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o deny_v some_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o yet_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o upon_o such_o a_o denial_n of_o some_o essential_a point_n do_v gather_v into_o a_o separate_a society_n to_o maintain_v their_o error_n and_o oppugn_v the_o truth_n and_o according_a to_o these_o various_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n horesie_n and_o heretic_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v save_v and_o be_v or_o be_v not_o within_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o w._n 1_n do_v deceitful_o confound_v of_o which_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o the_o end_n and_o show_v you_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o philastrius_n how_o mischievous_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o heresy_n against_o every_o different_a opinion_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o so_o to_o make_v heretic_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n chap._n iii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n pope_n w._n j._n by_o pope_n i_o mean_v st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o lawful_a successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o 1_o rome_n have_v authority_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o govern_v all_o particular_a church_n next_o under_o christ._n r._n b._n i_o be_o never_o the_o near_o know_v the_o pope_n by_o this_o till_o i_o know_v how_o st._n peter_n successor_n may_v be_v know_v to_o i_o q._n 1._o what_o personal_a qualification_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o other_o bishop_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o know_v r._n b._n if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o be_v no_o pope_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o faith_n w._n j._n it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v no_o pope_n while_o
deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n and_o that_o as_o by_o tradition_n and_o how_o lame_a their_o tradition_n be_v which_o be_v carry_v but_o by_o their_o private_a affirmation_n and_o be_v but_o the_o unproved_a say_n of_o a_o sect._n to_o this_o he_o say_v w._n j._n that_o this_o belong_v to_o our_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o term_n and_o so_o i_o must_v pass_v it_o by_o r._n b._n q._n 2._o what_o proof_n or_o notice_n must_v satisfy_v as_o in_o particular_n what_o be_v true_a tradition_n 2._o w._n j._n such_o as_o with_o proportion_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n or_o notice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o temporal_a kingdom_n r._n b._n but_o you_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o be_v that_o be_v proportionable_a this_o be_v answer_v before_o i_o add_v be_v it_o necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v able_a to_o weigh_v the_o credit_n of_o contradicting-party_n when_o one_o half_a of_o the_o world_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o another_o thing_n what_o opportunity_n have_v ordinary_a christian_n to_o compare_v they_o and_o discern_v the_o moral_a advantage_n on_o each_o side_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n when_o two_o or_o three_o part_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o do_v salvation_n lie_v on_o this_o w._n j._n as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v to_o know_v which_o book_n be_v and_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n among_o those_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n r._n b._n that_o these_o book_n be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n 1._o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n 2._o and_o a_o assertion_n easy_o remember_v 3._o and_o all_o the_o church_n be_v agree_v of_o all_o that_o we_o take_v as_o ca●…cal_a 4._o and_o yet_o man_n that_o practical_o believe_v but_o the_o creed_n and_o summary_n of_o religion_n shall_v certain_o be_v save_v though_o they_o erroneous_o doubt_v of_o some_o of_o the_o uncontroverted_a book_n as_o chronicle_n esther_n canticle_n etc._n etc._n much_o more_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o controvert_v apocrypha_fw-la but_o 1._o your_o tradition_n in_o question_n be_v many_o particular_n hard_o for_o to_o be_v remember_v 2._o and_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o fact_n where_o a_o word_n forget_v or_o alter_v change_v the_o thing_n 3._o and_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v against_o it_o 4._o and_o you_o will_v lay_v the_o people_n salvation_n on_o it_o yea_o and_o make_v it_o one_o of_o your_o cheat_a quibble_n to_o prove_v your_o religion_n safe_a than_o we_o because_o some_o protestant_n say_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v save_v but_o you_o say_v that_o protestant_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v because_o you_o have_v less_o sincerity_n and_o charity_n be_v not_o here_o difference_n enough_o if_o you_o hold_v that_o all_o they_o be_v damn_v that_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v canonical_a peruse_v bishop_n cousin_n catalogue_n of_o council_n and_o father_n that_o receive_v they_o not_o and_o see_v whether_o you_o damn_v not_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n for_o man_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o your_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v that_o they_o try_v all_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v canonical_a and_o know_v it_o why_o then_o do_v you_o find_v your_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o your_o forebelieve_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o vicar_n or_o your_o church_n his_o church_n and_o why_o do_v you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n in_o the_o world_n to_o affright_v poor_a people_n to_o believe_v and_o be_v subject_a to_o your_o pope_n i_o here_o ask_v he_o must_v all_o the_o people_n here_o take_v the_o word_n of_o their_o present_a teacher_n and_o he_o humane_a dare_v not_o answer_v yea_o or_o nay_o but_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n ans._n if_o it_o be_v no_o more_o it_o give_v they_o no_o certainty_n but_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o one_o man_n as_o a_o teacher_n they_o be_v broug●…●…o_o ●…cern_v themselves_o those_o notify_a evidence_n by_o which_o the_o teacher_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d book_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o they_o attain_v no_o high_a than_o to_o believe_v fide_fw-la d●…_n the_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n the_o doubt_v or_o ignorance_n of_o some_o text_n or_o book_n will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o scripture_n that_o impress_n of_o divine_a authority_n which_o to_o a_o prepare_a hea●…_n o●…_n reader_n will_v 〈◊〉_d convince_v he_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n though_o not_o r●…e_v he_o of_o every_o particular_a text_n and_o book_n r._n b._n then_o most_o of_o the_o world_n must_v believe_v against_o you_o because_o most_o of_o the_o teacher_n be_v against_o 4._o you_o tradition_n quite_o ●…eth_v p●…er_n w._n j._n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n external_a communion_n and_o dependence_n of_o pastor_n which_o be_v contrary_a in_o belief_n ●…o_o 〈◊〉_d any_o way_n to_o be_v parallel_n with_o we_o in_o extent_n and_o multitude_n prove_v there_o be_v and_o name_v it_o all_o our_o adversary_n together_o be_v a_o patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n and_o as_o much_o adversary_n one_o to_o another_o as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o the_o one_o justify_v we_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o other_o condemn_v we_o so_o that_o no_o beed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o their_o testimony_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la convenientia_fw-la r_o b._n they_o agree_v not_o with_o your_o interest_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o to_o be_v heed_v i_o doubt_v the_o testimony_n of_o your_o three_o or_o four_o part_n will_v prove_v much_o less_o regardable_a let_v we_o try_v the_o case_n for_o here_o you_o be_v utter_o confound_v 1_o indeed_o none_o that_o our_o ordinary_a language_n call_v a_o congregation_n that_o be_v man_n that_o meet_v local_o together_o be_v so_o big_a as_o all_o your_o party_n but_o a_o church_n far_o better_a unite_v than_o you_o be_v be_v far_o great_a than_o you_o those_o that_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n ☞_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v etc._n etc._n have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o head_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o ●…ly_a g●…st_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n desire_n and_o practise_v essential_a to_o christianity_n in_o the_o creed_n lords-prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o recei●…e_v all_o the_o ●…re_n as_o god_n ●…ord_n which_o i●…●…y_v here_o receive_v by_o we_o as_o canonical_a these_o have_v all_o the_o ●…ls_n of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o but_o such_o be_v all_o the_o forementioned_a christian_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n be_v the_o constitutive_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o body_n be_v christian_n 1_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n viz._n the_o same_o baptism_n ●…reed_v and_o scripture_n 2._o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o external_a communion_n if_o you_o mean_v external_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o much_o more_o they_o have_v the_o same_o scripture_n read_v and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n they_o use_v the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n viz._n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n yea_o they_o be_v common_o for_o some_o confirmation_n ordination_n 〈◊〉_d of_o penitence_n and_o absolution_n of_o p●…nitents_n matrimony_n etc._n etc._n though_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n be_v fit_a for_o they_o all_o much_o less_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cove●…_n grace_n they_o observe_v the_o same_o lord_n day_n for_o public_a worship_n they_o pray_v confess_v sin_n give_v thanks_o and_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o communication_n to_o each_o other_o in_o want_n this_o be_v their_o external_a communion_n 3._o they_o have_v the_o same_o depen●…_n of_o the_o people_n on_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n authorize_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o guide_v the_o church_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o public_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o if_o
be_v that_o make_v that_o law_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o apostle_n elder_n and_o brethren_n be_v ●…senters_n at_o jerusalem_n act_n 15._o 2._o inferior_n may_v come_v as_o deputy_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o he_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v oft_o send_v such_o to_o council_n so_o far_o off_o as_o his_o gravity_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o go_v to_o but_o be_v these_o priest_n capable_a person_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v a_o bishop_n deputation_n make_v they_o capable_a what_o if_o a_o priest_n depute_v a_o layman_n to_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n or_o a_o bishop_n depute_v a_o priest_n or_o deacon_n only_o to_o ordain_v will_v the_o deputation_n make_v they_o capable_a but_o if_o they_o be_v capable_a why_o may_v they_o not_o be_v there_o by_o their_o own_o right_a if_o the_o business_n of_o council_n be_v as_o much_o as_o our_o modern_a papist_n tell_v we_o to_o transmit_v the_o tradition_n which_o the_o several_a country_n have_v receive_v from_o their_o ancestor_n why_o may_v not_o ten_o learned_a grave_a priest_n as_o true_o and_o credible_o tell_v what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o country_n as_o one_o unlearned_a or_o learned_a bishop_n 3._o note_v here_o how_o the_o high_a act_n of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n with_o they_o may_v be_v do_v per_fw-la alios_fw-la by_o deputy_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n to_o preside_v in_o general_a council_n be_v of_o old_a in_o the_o empire_n the_o top_n of_o the_o pope_n prerogative_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v do_v that_o by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o a_o bishop_n may_v vote_n and_o do_v all_o his_o part_n in_o a_o general_n council_n by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o be_v that_o a_o office_n proper_o ecclesiastical_a and_o sacred_a which_o may_v be_v exercise_v by_o other_o not_o of_o that_o office_n why_o then_o may_v not_o a_o layman_n be_v depute_v to_o preach_v baptize_v pray_v consecrate_v and_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n excommunicate_a absolve_v etc._n etc._n if_o depute_a and_o if_o so_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o office_n i_o tell_v he_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n where_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o priest_n and_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n basil_n in_o many_o thing_n be_v not_o allow_v of_o by_o we_o name_v those_o other_o receive_v as_o general_a council_n 9_o by_o we_o that_o have_v simple_a priest_n with_o power_n of_o give_v vote_n as_o such_o r._n b._n see_v reader_n when_o they_o have_v talk_v of_o council_n and_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n all_o signify_v but_o what_o please_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o dislike_n can_v make_v council_n and_o their_o judgement_n null_a at_o a_o word_n basil_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v but_o they_o condemn_v and_o depose_v the_o pope_n and_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o pope_n dislike_v they_o and_o now_o that_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o all_o such_o authority_n basil_n be_v not_o allow_v by_o we_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n allow_v by_o you_o that_o be_v against_o you_o but_o if_o any_o of_o they_o will_v see_v where_o priest_n have_v have_v vote_n in_o council_n let_v they_o read_v blondel_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o def._n sent._n hieron_n and_o he_o shall_v have_v proof_n enough_o for_o i_o will_v not_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o vain_a citation_n do_v by_o many_o long_a ago_o only_o i_o note_v 1._o if_o abbot_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n have_v vote_n in_o council_n why_o not_o priest_n save_v the_o pope_n will_n what_o make_v the_o difference_n 2d_o if_o presbyter_n may_v have_v vote_n in_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n why_o not_o in_o general_a one_o the_o will_v of_o the_o pope_n make_v and_o unmake_n all_o thus_o we_o have_v no_o satisfaction_n what_o a_o general_a council_n be_v chap._n vii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o schism_n w._n j._n i_o understand_v by_o schism_n a_o wilful_a separation_n or_o division_n of_o one_o self_n from_o the_o whole_a visible_a 1_o church_n of_o christ._n r._n b._n if_o this_o only_a be_v schism_n it_o be_v comfortable_a news_n to_o many_o a_o thousand_o and_o million_o that_o some_o call_v schismatic_n i_o hope_v then_o there_o be_v no_o schismatic_n in_o england_n of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v presbyterian_o erastians_n independent_o separatist_n or_o anabaptist_n for_o i_o know_v not_o one_o of_o these_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ._n but_o i_o doubt_v with_o these_o judge_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n go_v for_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ._n i_o ask_v here_o q._n 1._o be_v it_o no_o schism_n to_o separate_v from_o a_o particular_a church_n unless_o from_o the_o whole_a 2._o w._n j._n no_o it_o be_v no_o schism_n as_o schism_n be_v take_v in_o the_o holy_a father_n for_o that_o great_a and_o capital_a crime_n so_o severe_o censure_v by_o they_o in_o which_o sense_n only_o i_o take_v it_o here_o r._n b._n 1._o he_o first_o define_v without_o distinguish_v and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o mean_v only_o one_o sort_n of_o schism_n 2._o let_v the_o reader_n but_o peruse_v all_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o mention_v schism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o will_v not_o find_v that_o every_o text_n or_o almost_o every_o one_o do_v use_v the_o word_n only_o of_o division_n make_v in_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o of_o divide_v or_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n and_o whether_o such_o separate_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o there_o call_v heresy_n rather_o than_o schism_n but_o see_v it_o be_v only_o this_o capital_a schism_n that_o he_o call_v by_o that_o name_n i_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o draw_v he_o now_o to_o more_o censoriousness_n and_o therefore_o i_o note_v how_o by_o this_o he_o absolve_v the_o protestant_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n w._n j._n do_v not_o your_o first_o protestant_n in_o germany_n separate_v as_o much_o from_o the_o armenian_n ethiopian_n 3_o greek_n as_o they_o do_v from_o the_o roman_n if_o they_o do_v not_o show_v the_o communion_n they_o have_v with_o they_o r._n b._n very_o willing_o sir_n they_o have_v the_o same_o god_n the_o same_o saviour_n the_o same_o spirit_n the_o same_o faith_n baptism_n and_o hope_n and_o so_o be_v of_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v all_o the_o union_n predicate_v by_o st._n paul_n eph._n 4._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o they_o have_v also_o the_o same_o scripture_n the_o same_o rule_n of_o prayer_n and_o practice_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o decalogue_n and_o precept_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o same_o creed_n the_o same_o love_n the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n praise_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n day_n for_o holy_a communion_n pastor_n of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o have_v no_o other_o diversity_n in_o such_o thing_n than_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 12._o be_v this_o no_o communion_n w._n j._n do_v your_o minister_n first_o take_v either_o mission_n or_o jurisdiction_n to_o preach_v from_o any_o of_o their_o 4._o bishop_n or_o patriarch_n do_v they_o take_v the_o prescription_n of_o their_o liturgy_n discipline_n or_o hierarchy_n from_o they_o do_v they_o upon_o occasion_n join_v in_o prayer_n sacrament_n or_o sacrifice_n with_o they_o r._n b._n 1._o do_v we_o hold_v communion_n with_o none_o that_o we_o take_v not_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o what_o absurdity_n do_v you_o thrust_v upon_o we_o do_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n corinth_n galatia_n philippi_n colosse_n etc._n etc._n hold_v no_o communion_n in_o scripture-time_n unless_o they_o have_v mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o each_o other_o must_v the_o greek_n and_o armenian_n have_v mission_n &c_n &c_n from_o we_o if_o not_o why_o must_v we_o have_v it_o from_o they_o your_o church_n receive_v no_o mission_n or_o jurisdiction_n from_o other_o have_v you_o therefore_o no_o communion_n with_o they_o your_o language_n favour_v of_o so_o much_o tyranny_n and_o pride_n as_o will_v tempt_v man_n indeed_o to_o take_v you_o for_o anti-christian_n as_o if_o subjection_n to_o you_o and_o communion_n with_o you_o be_v all_o one_o or_o you_o will_v have_v communion_n with_o no_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n b●…n_o the_o relation_n of_o servant_n or_o subject_n to_o you_o 2._o when_o we_o have_v qualification_n election_n and_o where_o it_o may_v be_v have_v due_a ordination_n we_o know_v of_o no_o other_o mission_n necessary_a beside_o god_n own_o word_n which_o charge_v christ_n minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n etc._n etc._n god_n charge_v all_o minister_n to_o preach_v be_v their_o mission_n when_o they_o be_v minister_n prince_n leave_v and_o people_n consent_n do_v give_v they_o their_o opportunity_n and_o for_o
jurisdiction_n we_o need_v and_o desire_v none_o but_o a_o ministerial_a power_n of_o guide_a soul_n towards_o heaven_n by_o god_n word_n preach_v and_o apply_v and_o he_o that_o ordain_v a_o minister_n thereby_o give_v he_o all_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o his_o office_n if_o a_o man_n be_v license_v a_o physician_n must_v he_o have_v also_o mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n give_v he_o after_o before_o he_o may_v practise_v 3._o how_o can_v we_o take_v ordination_n mission_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o man_n on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o world_n what_o need_v we_o go_v so_o far_o for_o it_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v near_o we_o which_o tell_v we_o how_o god_n will_v have_v minister_n more_o easy_o call_v than_o so_o 4._o and_o as_o for_o the_o prescript_n of_o our_o liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o you_o must_v you_o needs_o have_v a_o liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n of_o man_n form_v so_o you_o have_v but_o we_o can_v live_v in_o christian_a communion_n with_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o his_o spirit_n have_v prescribe_v we_o be_v there_o no_o communion_n to_o be_v have_v with_o any_o church_n but_o that_o which_o have_v arrive_v at_o that_o height_n of_o pride_n as_o to_o make_v liturgy_n discipline_n and_o hierarchy_n for_o all_o the_o chrstian_a world_n and_o to_o suffer_v none_o to_o speak_v public_o to_o god_n in_o any_o word_n but_o those_o which_o they_o write_v down_o for_o they_o to_o read_v to_o god_n we_o make_v no_o such_o law_n to_o any_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o do_v we_o receive_v any_o such_o law_n from_o any_o and_o yet_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o fraternal_a and_o not_o subjective_a communion_n there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n who_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v who_o be_v you_o that_o make_v law_n for_o another_o servant_n and_o judge_v they_o have_v the_o church_n no_o communion_n for_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n when_o no_o liturgy_n be_v impose_v or_o when_o the_o first_o law_n make_v hereabout_o be_v but_o that_o no_o one_o shall_v use_v a_o form_n of_o prayer_n till_o he_o have_v show_v it_o to_o the_o synod_n no_o nor_o when_o gregory_n and_o ambrose_n liturgy_n be_v strive_v for_o pre-eminence_n have_v the_o church_n at_o neocesaria_n no_o communion_n with_o that_o at_o caesarea_n because_o they_o have_v so_o different_a liturgy_n as_o their_o quarrel_n against_o basil_n intimate_v and_o when_o every_o bishop_n use_v what_o liturgy_n he_o please_v in_o his_o own_o congregation_n be_v there_o then_o no_o communion_n between_o the_o church_n we_o refuse_v not_o any_o meet_a liturgy_n that_o be_v find_v needful_a to_o our_o concord_n but_o true_o for_o hierarchy_n and_o species_n or_o form_n of_o church_n and_o the_o substantial_o of_o discipline_n we_o earnest_o wish_v that_o no_o church_n have_v any_o but_o what_o god_n have_v himself_o prescribe_v to_o they_o 5._o but_o how_o shall_v we_o join_v with_o man_n many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o mile_n off_o we_o in_o word_n and_o sacrament_n otherwise_o than_o by_o use_v those_o of_o the_o same_o species_n we_o do_v not_o local_o hold_v such_o communion_n with_o the_o next_o parish_n to_o we_o nor_o with_o many_o in_o the_o world_n for_o we_o can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o much_o less_o can_v we_o be_v every_o lord_n day_n in_o every_o assembly_n in_o ethiopia_n and_o armenia_n as_o for_o sacrifice_n we_o know_v of_o none_o acceptable_a but_o the_o commemmoration_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n once_o offer_v for_o sin_n and_o the_o offering_n of_o ourselves_o and_o our_o thanksgiving_n praise_n and_o other_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o why_o you_o distinguish_v the_o first_o from_o sacrament_n i_o know_v not_o w._n j._n a●…d_n do_v they_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o the_o very_a same_o 5._o wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n r._n b._n 1._o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la it_o may_v suffice_v to_o say_v to_o you_o that_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o they_o do_v 2._o but_o i_o better_o answer_v you_o we_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o all_o point_v essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o in_o abundance_n more_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o that_o we_o agree_v in_o all_o the_o old_a creed_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n 3._o but_o do_v you_o papist_n agree_v in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n no_o not_o by_o a_o thousand_o for_o all_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o god_n have_v intelligible_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o there_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o intelligible_a text_n of_o scripture_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o which_o your_o commentator_n differ_v if_o all_o christian_n agree_v in_o all_o that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o all_o christian_n full_o understand_v every_o intelligible_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o every_o woman_n and_o rustic_a be_v as_o wise_a in_o divinity_n as_o the_o great_a doctor_n yea_o far_o be_v the_o doctor_n from_o such_o wisdom_n w._n j._n if_o so_o they_o may_v as_o well_o be_v say_v not_o to_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o 6._o the_o roman_a church_n r._n b._n some_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o we_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o you_o but_o you_o from_o we_o but_o i_o must_v say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v consider_v either_o material_o as_o christian_n and_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o we_o neither_o do_v nor_o do_v separate_v from_o you_o or_o else_o formal_o as_o p●…pal_a and_o so_o we_o renounce_v you_o and_o all_o communion_n with_o you_o as_o be_v no_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o sect_n that_o treasonable_o usurp_v his_o prerogative_n the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la specifi_v or_o inform_v the_o society_n christ_n only_o be_v the_o universal_a head_n of_o all_o christian_n as_o such_o and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n with_o which_o we_o profess_v concord_n and_o communion_n in_o this_o head_n greek_o armenian_n ethiopian_n and_o protestant_n unite_v but_o the_o pope_n false_o pretend_v to_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n be_v take_v for_o the_o universal_a head_n by_o the_o papist_n and_o in_o renounce_v this_o head_n we_o renounce_v no_o other_o church_n but_o you_o r._n b._n not_o from_o you_o as_o christian_n but_o scandalous_a offender_n who_o we_o be_v command_v to_o avoid_v we_o separate_v not_o from_o any_o but_o as_o they_o separate_v from_o christ._n w._n j._n 1._o no_o sure_a for_o if_o you_o do_v you_o must_v be_v jew_n turk_n or_o infidel_n 2._o be_v there_o 7._o no_o more_o in_o it_o do_v not_o the_o primitive_a person_n who_o begin_v your_o breach_n and_o party_n owe_v subjection_n to_o their_o respective_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n diocesan_n and_o pastor_n r._n b._n no_o none_o at_o all_o as_o they_o be_v papal_a that_o be_v the_o subordinate_a minister_n of_o the_o usurp_a universal_a bishop_n w._n j._n and_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o subject_a to_o subtract_v himself_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o a_o lawful_a pastor_n because_o he_o be_v a_o scandalous_a offender_n r._n b._n yes_o if_o his_o offence_n be_v a_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o take_v on_o he_o a_o false_a office_n by_o usurpation_n or_o if_o he_o remain_v lawful_a quoad_fw-la hoc_fw-la as_o christian_n and_o add_v a_o treasonable_a addition_n we_o must_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o he_o at_o least_o in_o that_o unlawful_a part_n w._n j._n if_o you_o say_v he_o remain_v not_o in_o his_o former_a power_n you_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n command_v 8._o obedience_n to_o the_o scandalous_a pharisee_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o the_o pharisee_n set_v not_o up_o a_o new_a usurp_a office_n of_o head-ship_n constitutive_a pretend_o to_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n but_o only_o abuse_v a_o lawful_a office_n that_o god_n have_v make_v 2._o yet_o christ_n require_v obedience_n to_o they_o no_o far_o than_o as_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o deliver_v the_o law_n but_o warn_v man_n to_o renounce_v they_o as_o corrupter_n and_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o their_o doctrine_n 3._o and_o this_o much_o be_v but_o till_o they_o show_v themselves_o uncurable_a and_o he_o set_v up_o new_a officer_n over_o his_o church_n and_o then_o all_o man_n be_v to_o forsake_v the_o pharisee_n government_n w._n j._n you_o destroy_v all_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o open_v a_o way_n to_o tread_v under_o foot_n all_o temporal_a authority_n if_o you_o hold_v these_o offence_n deprive_v he_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n why_o not_o so_o of_o 9_o king_n and_o magistrate_n and_o parent_n and_o then_o you_o have_v spin_v a_o fair_a thread_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n confusion_n
church_n 6._o christ_n himself_o wash_v his_o apostle_n foot_n and_o teach_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a which_o be_v use_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n where_o it_o be_v a_o needful_a act_n of_o ministry_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 7._o baptism_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v administer_v by_o dip_v over_o head_n in_o water_n but_o you_o take_v not_o that_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o lord_n day_n be_v holy_a observation_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o your_o doctor_n do_v equal_a it_o with_o other_o holy_a day_n and_o make_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 9_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n distinguish_v essential_o from_o integral_n and_o accident_n in_o their_o time_n therefore_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a society_n that_o have_v not_o ever_o have_v integral_n and_o accident_n christ_n institute_v baptism_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v thus_o the_o essential_o yet_o he_o say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o but_o all_o those_o be_v not_o essential_o for_o christ_n himself_o distinguish_v tything_n mint_n annise_v and_o cummin_n from_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o say_v these_o aught_o you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o than_o these_o be_v then_o a_o duty_n all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n and_o yet_o who_o ever_o say_v but_o you_o that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n christ_n by_o his_o apostle_n institute_v that_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o affliction_n be_v accident_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n appointment_n and_o have_v be_v ever_o there_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o 11._o all_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n have_v be_v of_o christ_n and_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o that_o christian_n be_v just_a as_o many_o as_o they_o have_v be_v or_o of_o such_o measure_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n for_o even_o perfection_n be_v a_o duty_n 12._o few_o of_o your_o own_o do_v think_v that_o extreme_a unction_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o if_o it_o cease_v it_o will_v be_v no_o church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o thing_n but_o see_v how_o these_o man_n unchurch_n themselves_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n for_o it_o have_v cast_v off_o that_o which_o they_o call_v essential_a be_v it_o 5._o but_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n the_o change_n have_v unchurch_v they_o these_o consequent_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o will_v unchurch_n most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n but_o page_n 55_o 56._o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n must_v be_v necessary_o believe_v 6._o by_o every_o member_n no_o not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o to_o such_o only_a to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v answ._n 1._o and_o yet_o these_o man_n tell_v our_o people_n to_o affright_v they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o church_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o but_o who_o can_v ever_o know_v what_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o sufficient_a propound_v while_o twenty_o degree_n of_o man_n capacity_n make_v twenty_o degree_n of_o proposal_n respective_o sufficient_a what_o man_n of_o reason_n can_v believe_v that_o such_o self-confuting_a dispute_n as_o you_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o sure_o the_o christian_a empire_n of_o abassia_n than_o have_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n when_o but_o late_o your_o emissary_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o never_o hear_v from_o the_o pope_n till_o now_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v access_n or_o send_v to_o they_o q._n whether_o that_o empire_n be_v true_a christian_n through_o so_o many_o age_n see_v they_o receive_v not_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o authoritative_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o papal_a church_n and_o yet_o confess_o be_v never_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 3._o by_o this_o account_n all_o christian_n essential_o differ_v from_o each_o other_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o christianity_n be_v a_o word_n of_o such_o monstrous_a ambiguity_n that_o it_o signify_v as_o many_o several_a religion_n as_o there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o divers_a capacity_n make_v diversity_n of_o proposal_n become_v necessary_a or_o sufficient_a to_o they_o but_o he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n though_o not_o to_o the_o several_a member_n more_o difficulty_n still_o 1._o how_o shall_v we_o ever_o know_v the_o church_n this_o way_n if_o the_o belief_n 7._o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v essential_a to_o some_o and_o only_o to_o some_o how_o many_o must_v they_o be_v that_o so_o believe_v will_v one_o serve_v or_o one_o thousand_o to_o make_v all_o the_o rest_n church-member_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o or_o how_o many_o will_v this_o leven_n extend_v to_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o italy_n prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n 2._o how_o come_v another_o man_n belief_n to_o be_v of_o such_o save_a use_n to_o other_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o belief_n but_o their_o own_o who_o believe_v not_o than_o all_o the_o world_n be_v of_o your_o church_n that_o want_v sufficient_a proposal_n and_o unbeliever_n be_v christian_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o be_v it_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o all_o the_o unknown_a world_n and_o american_n and_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n be_v of_o your_o christian_a church_n and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v save_v then_o without_o believe_v his_o own_o supremacy_n i_o very_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o pope_n of_o twenty_o that_o believe_v his_o own_o infallibility_n doubtless_o some_o illiterate_a or_o ill-bred_a pope_n have_v have_v but_o very_o defective_a proposal_n of_o their_o own_o supremacy_n it_o be_v rather_o affirm_v by_o flattery_n than_o ever_o prove_v to_o they_o pag._n 57_o have_v first_o call_v for_o sense_n in_o my_o word_n because_o the_o printer_n have_v put_v as_o for_o be_v he_o turn_v his_o former_a assertion_n whatever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n 8._o be_v essential_a to_o it_o into_o another_o because_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v essential_a and_o this_o yet_o more_o plain_o shame_v the_o asserte_a than_o the_o former_a for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v 1._o that_o every_o word_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n shall_v be_v ever_o after_o its_o existence_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o no_o minister_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n but_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v commit_v any_o sin_n at_o all_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n till_o he_o come_v etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o sure_a all_o this_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n pag_n 58._o he_o will_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o miscite_fw-la fr._n sta._n clara_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o infidel_n may_v be_v save_v but_o only_o those_o that_o have_v not_o a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n through_o invincible_a ignorance_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o of_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n nor_o that_o any_o may_v be_v save_v who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o my_o friend_n will_v be_v sorry_a to_o see_v i_o so_o defective_a in_o my_o citation_n and_o he_o hope_v i_o will_v mend_v it_o in_o the_o next_o ans._n that_o i_o will_v if_o plain_a word_n transcribe_v be_v any_o amend_v but_o i_o can_v amend_v your_o deceitful_a deal_n 1._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o sta._n clara_n say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o such_o be_v in_o your_o church_n and_o so_o may_v be_v save_v who_o indeed_o be_v no_o
christian_n and_o so_o not_o of_o the_o church_n indeed_o 2._o we_o know_v of_o no_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o you_o call_v explicite_fw-la faith_n in_o christ_n common_a custom_n call_v those_o infidel_n that_o never_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o who_o he_o be_v or_o hear_v it_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o and_o he_o can_v believe_v it_o that_o do_v not_o hear_v it_o most_o of_o the_o infidel_n and_o heathen_a world_n profess_v to_o believe_v god_n veracity_n and_o that_o all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v true_a if_o this_o be_v a_o implicit_a believe_v in_o christ_n almost_o all_o the_o heathen_a world_n believe_v in_o he_o use_v name_n and_o word_n as_o you_o see_v cause_n these_o be_v infidel_n in_o our_o use_n of_o speech_n 3._o the_o place_n in_o sancta_fw-la clara_n be_v pag._n 113._o beside_o 109_o 110._o etc._n etc._n the_o word_n be_v too_o large_a to_o be_v transcribe_v he_o cit_v many_o author_n to_o prove_v such_o in_o the_o church_n and_o save_v where_o after_o much_o to_o that_o purpose_n he_o say_v what_o be_v clear_a than_o that_o at_o this_o day_n the_o gospel_n bind_v not_o where_o it_o be_v not_o authentical_o preach_v that_o be_v that_o at_o this_o day_n man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o that_o sense_n speak_v the_o doctor_n concern_v the_o jew_n and_o very_o whatever_o my_o illustrious_a master_n hold_v with_o his_o learned_a mr._n herera_n i_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o scotus_n and_o the_o common_a one_o and_o he_o cit_v many_o for_o it_o read_v the_o rest_n yourself_o in_o the_o book_n and_o i_o defy_v your_o pretence_n that_o this_o be_v unjust_a citation_n i_o cite_v none_o of_o this_o as_o if_o i_o be_v handle_v the_o question_n whether_o any_o beside_o christian_n be_v save_v but_o whether_o the_o nation_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n be_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o your_o church_n but_o pag._n 60._o he_o will_v prove_v that_o nothing_o which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n 9_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n for_o every_o accident_n be_v separable_a from_o the_o subject_n without_o destroy_v the_o subject_n who_o accident_n it_o be_v but_o what_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o his_o church_n be_v inseparable_a from_o it_o ans._n 1._o what_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o accident_n must_v it_o therefore_o needs_o be_v essential_a be_v there_o not_o integral_a part_n that_o be_v not_o essential_a part_n 2._o you_o that_o boast_v so_o great_o of_o your_o logic_n faculty_n shall_v not_o so_o absurd_o err_v as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o major_n do_v you_o not_o hereby_o deny_v all_o proper_a accident_n which_o agree_v as_o omni_n &_o soli_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la be_v not_o risibilis_fw-la a_o accident_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o inseparable_a 2._o be_v not_o quantity_n inseparable_a from_o a_o body_n or_o natural_a substance_n 3._o what_o the_o porphyrian_o speak_v of_o a_o intellectual_a separation_n you_o ignorant_o or_o deceitful_o cetera_fw-la apply_v to_o a_o actual_a eventual_a separation_n if_o christ_n have_v be_v otherwise_o put_v to_o death_n than_o by_o crucify_a or_o elsewhere_o than_o at_o jerusalem_n if_o his_o bone_n have_v be_v break_v if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v the_o same_o integral_a part_n and_o accident_n of_o body_n as_o he_o ever_o have_v he_o have_v be_v christ_n still_o but_o yet_o it_o be_v logical_o impossible_a that_o any_o of_o these_o shall_v have_v be_v otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v they_o be_v fore-decreed_a of_o god_n if_o the_o sun_n shall_v cease_v move_v illuminate_a heat_a you_o may_v say_v it_o will_v be_v still_o the_o sun_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o accident_n be_v eventual_o inseparable_a from_o it_o if_o you_o will_v cause_v humidity_n to_o cease_v from_o water_n or_o separate_v gravity_n from_o earth_n of_o stone_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v think_v you_o have_v make_v they_o other_o thing_n 4._o but_o to_o instance_n as_o you_o do_v in_o such_o a_o be_v as_o the_o church_n dishonour_v your_o boast_a logic_n great_o the_o ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la of_o a_o church_n be_v relative_n and_o relation_n be_v a_o accident_n and_o to_o say_v that_o accident_n may_v all_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n without_o destroy_v it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o relation_n may_v be_v separate_v that_o be_v the_o church_n from_o itself_o or_o formal_a essence_n without_o destroy_v it_o do_v you_o conquer_v by_o such_o dispute_v as_o this_o be_v it_o by_o such_o that_o you_o have_v your_o boast_a print_a victory_n over_o such_o great_a logician_n as_o bishop_n gunning_n and_o bishop_n pierson_n can_v you_o also_o prove_v that_o all_o accident_n that_o be_v relation_n may_v be_v separable_a from_o family_n school_n kingdom_n without_o destroy_v they_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o you_o mean_v that_o the_o separation_n destroy_v not_o the_o humanity_n of_o the_o member_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o subject_n you_o mean_v for_o no_o more_o will_v apostasy_n or_o unchurch_v they_o destroy_v humanity_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o part_n may_v be_v sound_a your_o minor_a be_v false_a as_o well_o as_o your_o major_a what_o christ_n by_o his_o law_n command_v or_o prescribe_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o he_o institute_v but_o all_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v which_o christ_n command_v or_o institute_v he_o command_v we_o high_a degree_n of_o faith_n love_n and_o other_o duty_n than_o we_o perform_v you_o say_v no_o man_n may_v change_v his_o institution_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n do_v change_v it_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o plead_v for_o error_n or_o deceive_v poor_a soul_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o you_o and_o such_o other_o do_v not_o so_o it_o be_v god_n command_n that_o we_o never_o sin_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o never_o do_v sin_n when_o the_o apostle_n strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a it_o be_v christ_n institution_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o seek_v for_o domination_n or_o superiority_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v but_o be_v as_o little_a child_n and_o strive_v who_o shall_v be_v most_o humble_a and_o serviceable_a and_o take_v the_o low_a place_n and_o it_o be_v st._n peter_n doctrine_n that_o bishop_n must_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o flock_n nor_o rule_v they_o by_o constraint_n but_o voluntary_o but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o all_o no_o nor_o by_o your_o pretend_a head_n who_o be_v make_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o conclude_v then_o 1._o that_o many_o accident_n be_v not_o separable_a without_o destruction_n of_o the_o subject_n 2._o that_o many_o more_o shall_v never_o be_v separate_v 3._o that_o relation_n be_v not_o separable_a from_o the_o church_n nor_o number_n neither_o 4._o that_o there_o be_v integral_a part_n which_o be_v neither_o accident_n nor_o essential_n 5._o that_o every_o thing_n be_v not_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o in_o any_o man_n which_o christ_n have_v command_v or_o institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o it_o and_o if_o that_o may_v be_v in_o a_o man_n which_o christ_n forbid_v so_o may_v it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o that_o be_v absent_a which_o he_o command_v 6._o that_o it_o be_v a_o novel_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o common_a reason_n and_o all_o true_a theology_n and_o which_o a_o catechize_v child_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o to_o hold_v that_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n be_v essential_a to_o it_o and_o so_o that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v nullify_v if_o one_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n perish_v by_o the_o carelessness_n of_o scribe_n or_o printer_n or_o if_o one_o decent_a order_n be_v change_v or_o if_o one_o office_n be_v deprave_v etc._n etc._n 7._o it_o aggravate_v the_o error_n to_o hold_v that_o every_o institute_v apex_n or_o perfection_n for_o continuance_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o even_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o saviour_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o a_o church-member_n or_o a_o christian._n 8._o that_o this_o disputer_n absolute_o nullifi_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o have_v change_v the_o sacrament_n and_o prayer_n and_o church-officer_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n but_o i_o note_v to_o he_o that_o our_o question_n to_o he_o be_v whether_o the_o hold_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v institute_v be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o whether_o the_o institution_n itself_o be_v so_o may_v not_o the_o 10._o opinion_n be_v but_o integral_a or_o a_o accident_n here_o he_o reply_v without_o blush_v 1._o that_o thus_o i_o yield_v up_o
church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o be_v rome_n itself_o so_o but_o ever_o since_o their_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v visible_a sometime_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o sometime_o reject_v he_o the_o abassine_n and_o several_a other_o extra-imperial_a church_n never_o obey_v he_o the_o most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o eastern_a and_o african_n sometime_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o chief_a in_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o sometime_o they_o cast_v he_o off_o when_o the_o eastern_a empire_n cast_v he_o off_o but_o they_o never_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n iii_o in_o the_o three_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v show_v you_o no_o universal_a church_n now_o visible_a reject_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o universal_a leave_v out_o no_o part_n though_o a_o corrupt_a part_n and_o while_o papist_n own_v he_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o but_o i_o can_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o primitive_a universal_a church_n never_o own_v any_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o indefinite_a charge_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a 2._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n never_o own_v the_o roman_a universal_a sovereignty_n 3._o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o own_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v denominate_v from_o the_o major_a part_n we_o may_v say_v that_o now_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o and_o now_o reader_n answer_v these_o like_a sophism_n and_o you_o have_v answer_v this_o man_n of_o art_n 1._o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n at_o least_o heretofore_o ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n answ._n 1._o but_o another_o be_v part_n and_o the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n 2._o and_o none_o that_o do_v or_o ever_o do_v acknowledge_v those_o patriarch_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n 3._o and_o none_o of_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v they_o at_o first_o before_o they_o be_v erect_v so_o 2._o inst._n no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o condemn_v the_o monothelite_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychian_o the_o audian_o the_o luciferian_o the_o quartodecimani_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o part_v of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o and_o part_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o before_o they_o rise_v none_o of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o so_o another_o instance_n be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n and_o which_o use_v public_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o which_o forbid_v the_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v without_o special_a licence_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n now_o do_v these_o the_o most_o discover_v it_o and_o none_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o in_o many_o generation_n do_v there_o need_v any_o other_o answer_n to_o such_o palpable_a sophism_n his_o argument_n plain_o shall_v run_v thus_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o now_o ow_v the_o traitorous_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o lateran_n and_o part_n of_o who_o religion_n be_v for_o exterminate_v or_o burn_v all_o that_o will_v not_o renounce_v all_o belief_n of_o humane_a sense_n in_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o for_o cast_v out_o prince_n that_o execute_v not_o this_o and_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o they_o and_o which_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n a_o disease_a part_n of_o the_o church_n only_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o now_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v far_o from_o it_o heretofore_o but_o pag._n 83._o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o mean_v neither_o one_o present_a assembly_n nor_o yet_o one_o as_o unite_v in_o one_o visible_a humane_a head_n but_o abstract_v from_o that_o also_o be_v it_o but_o true_o and_o proper_o one_o 6._o whencesoever_o the_o unity_n be_v draw_v it_o be_v all_o alike_a to_o the_o solution_n of_o the_o argument_n answ._n then_o sure_o our_o business_n be_v in_o a_o hopeful_a way_n if_o not_o as_o good_a as_o end_v remember_v this_o and_o fly_v not_o from_o it_o our_o unity_n be_v in_o christ_n our_o head_n one_o king_n make_v we_o one_o kingdom_n all_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n of_o christ._n yea_o moreover_o we_o be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o seven_o point_n of_o unity_n require_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eph._n 4._o viz._n we_o have_v 1._o one_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n 2._o one_o spirit_n 3._o one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v viz._n eternal_a glory_n 4_o one_o lord_n without_o a_o vice-christ_n 5._o one_o faith_n summary_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o integral_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o one_o baptism_n or_o solemnize_v baptismal_a covenant_n 7._o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o we_o all_o yea_o as_o to_o the_o integral_n though_o our_o grace_n have_v various_a degree_n we_o all_o receive_v the_o inspire_a prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v send_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o call_v by_o the_o way_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v though_o we_o receive_v not_o a_o usurper_n that_o make_v himself_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o title_n while_o he_o govern_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o it_o nor_o any_o according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o who_o be_v oft_o obtrude_v by_o whore_n and_o murder_n and_o be_v a_o wicked_a slave_n of_o satan_n so_o judge_v by_o his_o own_o general_n council_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o different_a opinion_n but_o neither_o for_o kind_a or_o number_n comparable_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o papal_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o not_o for_o kind_a such_o as_o about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n lie_v false-witness_n yea_o about_o the_o love_n of_o god_n itself_o be_v by_o the_o jansenist_n charge_v on_o the_o jesuit_n and_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o express_a word_n nor_o such_o as_o mr._n clarkson_n have_v collect_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o their_o most_o famous_a doctor_n of_o all_o party_n nor_o such_o about_o king-killing_a dissolve_v subject_n oath_n etc._n etc._n as_o h._n fowlis_n have_v gather_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o your_o great_a doctor_n and_o for_o number_n all_o the_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n set_v together_o have_v not_o half_a the_o controversy_n and_o contentious_a write_n against_o each_o other_o as_o your_o schoolman_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o your_o church_n have_v for_o our_o part_n we_o look_v not_o that_o our_o union_n shall_v be_v perfect_a till_o our_o wisdom_n and_o holiness_n and_o patience_n and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v perfect_a they_o that_o know_v but_o in_o part_n will_v err_v in_o part_n and_o differ_v in_o part_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n who_o work_v all_o in_o all_o for_o as_o the_o bedy_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n thus_o be_v we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o this_o body_n the_o church_n first_o apostle_n not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n but_o no_o universal_a vicar-head_n all_o these_o be_v member_n and_o shall_v so_o live_v in_o love_n that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o pag._n 84._o the_o man_n be_v not_o satisfy_v though_o i_o name_v they_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o these_o church_n unite_v in_o one_o christ._n 7._o answ._n how_o shall_v i_o make_v a_o man_n know_v that_o be_v unwilling_a or_o how_o but_o by_o name_v they_o by_o their_o country_n and_o profession_n i_o mean_v all_z the_o christian_n of_o
the_o arrian_n yea_o and_o of_o marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastaslus_fw-la justine_n almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n continue_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o council_n charge_v and_o condemn_v council_n bishop_n depose_v and_o curse_v bishop_n and_o monk_n as_o their_o soldier_n fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n when_o the_o obey_a or_o curse_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n divide_v the_o bishop_n for_o many_o prince_n reign_v and_o when_o one_o part_n call_v the_o other_o nestorian_n and_o the_o other_o call_v they_o eutychian_o almost_o every_o where_o and_o when_o after_o that_o the_o monothelite_n cause_n be_v in_o many_o emperor_n reign_n uppermost_a one_o while_n and_o down_o another_o and_o navicula_fw-la petri_n that_o alone_o escape_v before_o be_v thus_o drown_v by_o honorius_n if_o council_n belie_v he_o not_o and_o pope_n with_o the_o rest_n when_o the_o very_a same_o bishop_n as_o at_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n go_v one_o way_n in_o one_o council_n and_o another_o way_n in_o the_o next_o and_o subscribe_v to_o one_o edict_n e._n g._n of_o basiliscus_n and_o quick_o to_o the_o contrary_a of_o another_o and_o cry_v 〈◊〉_d we_o do_v it_o through_o fear_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o know_v by_o father_n bishop_n and_o council_n what_o be_v their_o concordant_a commentary_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4._o i_o ask_v you_o what_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v it_o that_o we_o profess_v to_o differ_v from_o for_o our_o novelty_n name_v they_o if_o you_o can_v either_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n you_o mean_v proper_o all_o christian_n or_o most_o if_o all_o alas_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o agreement_n in_o any_o more_o than_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o if_o most_o do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o the_o most_o two_o part_n to_o one_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o your_o church_n do_v not_o the_o greek_n once_o a_o year_n excommunicate_a or_o curse_v you_o to_o tell_v we_o now_o that_o above_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o the_o three_o part_n be_v that_o universal_a which_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v word_n that_o deserve_v indignation_n and_o not_o belief_n and_o without_o the_o medium_n of_o sword_n and_o flame_n and_o torment_a inquisition_n on_o one_o side_n and_o great_a bishopric_n and_o abbey_n wealth_n ease_n and_o domination_n on_o the_o other_o have_v long_o ago_o be_v scorn_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n §_o 10._o but_o he_o also_o deny_v that_o we_o believe_v with_o a_o save_v divine_a faith_n any_o of_o the_o say_a mystery_n and_o that_o our_o profession_n general_a and_o particular_a affirm_v it_o answ._n it_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n will_v deny_v it_o too_o of_o our_o heart_n we_o will_v not_o enter_v a_o dispute_n of_o our_o profession_n let_v our_o book_n be_v witness_n reader_n can_v thou_o believe_v that_o we_o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o christian_a verity_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n yea_o but_o the_o man_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o beleif_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v the_o pope_n own_o authority_n §_o 11._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v those_o that_o profess_v as_o much_o and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o the_o catechuman_n be_v ordinary_o teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o competentes_fw-la at_o baptism_n do_v profess_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o call_v for_o form_n again_o as_o if_o here_o be_v no_o universal_a and_o then_o deny_v the_o major_a but_o his_o word_n show_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a because_o the_o catechuman_n profess_v to_o believe_v implicit_o all_o that_o be_v teach_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o that_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o answ._n a_o unproved_a fiction_n on_o both_o part_n 1._o show_v we_o in_o father_n council_n or_o any_o true_a church-record_n that_o catechuman_n be_v then_o use_v to_o make_v any_o other_o exposition_n of_o those_o word_n than_o we_o do_v do_v they_o ever_o profess_v that_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v the_o fide_fw-la do_v they_o not_o call_v many_o of_o those_o council_n general_n though_o violent_a and_o erroneous_a which_o they_o curse_v the_o great_a doubt_n than_o be_v which_o party_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o christian_n then_o judge_v not_o of_o faith_n by_o the_o churchman_n but_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o faith_n else_o they_o have_v not_o so_o oft_o reject_v and_o hereticate_v many_o pope_n patriarch_n and_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o they_o do_v 2._o and_o protestant_n deny_v no_o article_n which_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la et_fw-la semper_fw-la as_o lerinen_n speak_v be_v account_v necessary_a to_o ●…ation_n yea_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o they_o can_v be_v papist_n because_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v against_o the_o papacy_n and_o all_o be_v against_o it_o or_o without_o it_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n let_v the_o reader_n peruse_v cyril_n hieros_n catech._n august_n and_o all_o other_o that_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o be_v infallible_a in_o himself_o or_o with_o his_o council_n and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v all_o that_o they_o say_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o say_v it_o or_o else_o we_o can_v be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o become_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o they_o can_v persuade_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o none_o but_o their_o subject_n can_v be_v save_v 3._o and_o what_o a_o useless_a thing_n to_o they_o make_v god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o their_o own_o exposition_n in_o its_o stead_n we_o know_v that_o the_o word_n suppose_v that_o the_o ignorant_a must_v have_v teacher_n without_o teach_v child_n can_v so_o much_o as_o learn_v to_o speak_v and_o oportet_fw-la discentem_fw-la credere_fw-la fide_fw-la humanâ_fw-la that_o be_v he_o must_v suppose_v his_o teacher_n wise_a than_o himself_o or_o else_o how_o can_v he_o judge_v he_o fit_a to_o teach_v he_o but_o what_o be_v teach_v but_o teach_v the_o learner_n to_o know_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o teacher_n do_v by_o the_o same_o evidence_n be_v it_o only_o to_o know_v what_o the_o teacher_n hold_v without_o know_v why_o if_o so_o must_v we_o know_v it_o by_o word_n or_o write_v if_o by_o word_n only_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v every_o man_n and_o woman_n come_v to_o be_v catechize_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v by_o all_o the_o christian_n world_n or_o be_v every_o priest_n the_o universal_a church_n or_o be_v he_o infallible_a and_o how_o come_v word_n speak_v to_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o word_n write_v do_v writing_n make_v they_o unintelligible_a why_o then_o be_v their_o council_n and_o commentary_n write_v but_o if_o write_v will_v serve_v why_o not_o god_n writing_n as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o god_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o these_o word_n intelligible_a till_o a_o pope_n expound_v they_o when_o the_o pope_n permit_v his_o casuist_n to_o expound_v they_o so_o as_o that_o love_v god_n once_o a_o month_n or_o once_o a_o year_n will_v serve_v for_o salvation_n and_o that_o attrition_n which_o be_v repeat_v only_o out_o of_o fear_n with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n will_v also_o serve_v can_v a_o man_n be_v save_v that_o believe_v repent_v and_o love_v god_n upon_o the_o bare_a command_n of_o god_n and_o scripture_n without_o hear_v what_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o council_n say_v if_o i_o make_v to_o myself_o no_o grave_v image_n so_o as_o to_o bow_v down_o and_o worship_n towards_o it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n will_v this_o damn_v i_o because_o i_o receive_v not_o the_o papist_n obliteration_n or_o contradiction_n of_o this_o commandment_n as_o a_o exposition_n if_o all_o the_o docree_n of_o council_n be_v as_o necessary_a as_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n why_o be_v not_o the_o council_n read_v in_o the_o
church_n still_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o general_a council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o do_v not_o hierome_n chrysostome_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n exhort_v me●…_n and_o woman_n to_o read_v the_o council_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o methinks_v you_o shall_v allow_v the_o scripture_n a_o equality_n with_o council_n but_o if_o god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o be_v nonsense_n or_o unintelligible_a till_o council_n or_o lope_n expound_v it_o scripture_n be_v far_o from_o have_v such_o equality_n then_o paul_n and_o peter_n speak_v not_o intelligible_o but_o p._n paul_n 4_o and_o 5._o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v then_o council_n may_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o scripture_n but_o scripture_n can_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o council_n and_o do_v all_o the_o papist_n man_n and_o woman_n know_v the_o council_n in_o short_a if_o a_o tyrannical_a sect_n of_o priest_n can_v get_v this_o monopoly_n or_o peculiar_a of_o expound_v all_o god_n law_n and_o word_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o save_v any_o but_o by_o their_o exposition_n it_o will_v become_v more_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n than_o of_o god_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v every_o priest_n must_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o we_o that_o never_o see_v they_o and_o must_v be_v the_o immediate_a object_n of_o our_o infallible_a belief_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o communicate_v to_o so_o great_a a_o swarm_n the_o sweetness_n of_o participate_v in_o his_o universal_a dominion_n and_o infallibility_n no_o wonder_n if_o self-love_n bid_v they_o serve_v his_o usurpation_n but_o by_o that_o time_n every_o woman_n must_v be_v sure_a 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n general_n indeed_o 2._o that_o with_o a_o council_n he_o be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o god_n revelation_n must_v be_v receive_v only_o on_o this_o deliverer_n authority_n 4._o and_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o on_o his_o exposition_n 5._o and_o know_v how_o man_n believe_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o such_o pope_n or_o council_n ever_o be_v 6._o and_o can_v tell_v certain_o which_o council_n be_v true_a and_o which_o false_a and_o which_o of_o they_o must_v be_v believe_v and_o which_o not_o 7._o and_o be_v sure_a that_o every_o priest_n do_v infallible_o report_v all_o this_o to_o she_o 8._o and_o do_v give_v a_o true_a exposition_n of_o each_o council_n before_o another_o council_n do_v expound_v they_o 9_o and_o be_v sure_a that_o she_o have_v all_o that_o those_o council_n have_v make_v necessary_a and_o have_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o more_o i_o say_v by_o that_o time_n all_o this_o certainty_n be_v attain_v the_o popish_a faith_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v hard_a work_n than_o they_o think_v that_o hear_v deceiver_n say_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v judge_v how_o far_o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o above_o god_n when_o it_o be_v thus_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o nor_o no_o man_n believe_v with_o a_o divine_a and_o save_v faith_n any_o one_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o believe_v it_o mere_o because_o god_n have_v give_v it_o we_o in_o the_o seal_a scripture_n and_o add_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n §_o 12._o my_o next_o argument_n be_v those_o that_o explicit_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o church_n creed_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o holy_a truth_n and_o implicit_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o be_v willing_a and_o diligent_a for_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o obey_v all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o they_o know_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o again_o the_o formalist_n want_v form_n a_o enumeration_n of_o particular_n in_o a_o description_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o a_o universal_a with_o he_o unless_o he_o read_v all_o and_o then_o he_o deny_v the_o major_a 1._o because_o our_o general_n profession_n be_v contradict_v in_o particular_n answ._n 1._o bare_a accusation_n without_o proof_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o honest_a 2._o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n direct_v and_o understand_v which_o prove_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o believe_v and_o a_o contradiction_n by_o consequence_n not_o understand_v which_o stand_v with_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o latter_a all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v that_o have_v any_o moral_a error_n 3._o o_o what_o self-condemning_a man_n be_v these_o how_o certain_o have_v a_o papist_n no_o true_a faith_n if_o abundance_n of_o contrary_a error_n nullify_v faith_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v you_o distinguish_v not_o between_o implicit_o contain_v in_o general_a principle_n and_o explicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n answ._n a_o very_a logical_a answer_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o do_v it_o his_o three_o be_v the_o strength_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o enough_o tradition_n and_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v believe_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v matter_n of_o practice_n be_v more_o at_o liberty_n that_o prince_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o murder_n or_o exterminate_v all_o their_o subject_n as_o heretic_n that_o will_v not_o be_v heretic_n and_o inhuman_a and_o to_o rebel_v perfidious_o against_o those_o prince_n that_o be_v sentence_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o not_o do_v it_o 2._o alas_o who_o can_v be_v save_v on_o these_o man_n term_n if_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o faith_n big_a enough_o to_o save_v he_o and_o yet_o perhaps_o you_o may_v hear_v again_o that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o any_o of_o all_o this_o save_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o subject_n be_v the_o infallible_a church_n universal_a and_o it_o be_v but_o prove_v a_o insufficient_a proposal_n and_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o tradition_n council_n scripture_n creed_n and_o all_o and_o never_o be_v the_o proposal_n of_o council_n more_o insufficient_a than_o when_o council_n be_v most_o frequent_a when_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantius_n valens_n valentinian_n theodosius_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n good_a theodosius_n junior_a marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastasius_n justin_n justinian_n and_o long_o after_o anathematise_v one_o general_n council_n and_o cry_v up_o another_o and_o set_v council_n against_o council_n be_v too_o much_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o time_n 4._o again_o he_o deny_v that_o protestant_n not_o excuse_v by_o invincible_a ignorance_n believe_v any_o article_n with_o a_o save_v faith_n answ._n easie_n dispute_v can_v a_o quaker_n say_v so_o too_o by_o we_o and_o you_o but_o how_o unhappy_a a_o thing_n be_v knowledge_n then_o and_o how_o bless_v a_o thing_n be_v invincible_a ignorance_n which_o may_v prevent_v so_o many_o man_n damnation_n §_o 13._o i_o prove_v the_o major_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o many_o papist_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v express_o only_a but_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v both_o express_o and_o implicit_o of_o all_o christian_n respective_o answ._n reader_n judge_n with_o what_o ingenuity_n these_o man_n dispute_v and_o how_o they_o make_v nothing_o of_o give_v up_o all_o their_o cause_n and_o yet_o cant_v on_o with_o any_o of_o the_o most_o senseless_a word_n he_o have_v large_o enough_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o general_n truth_n explicit_o be_v the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o contain_v particular_n though_o unknown_a to_o the_o believer_n i_o be_o now_o prove_v that_o protestant_n explicit_a faith_n leave_v out_o no_o article_n necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v to_o this_o end_n i_o cite_v bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n and_o after_o many_o other_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v in_o plain_a word_n even_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o enumeration_n he_o deny_v none_o of_o my_o proof_n as_o to_o explicit_a belief_n and_o do_v we_o need_v any_o more_o be_v not_o all_o that_o which_o he_o call_v explicit_a belief_n the_o mere_a denomination_n of_o the_o explicite_fw-la from_o the_o particular_n employ_v in_o it_o can_v any_o man_n want_v a_o implicit_a belief_n that_o want_v no_o explicite_fw-la belief_n if_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o the_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o tradition_n or_o expounder_n of_o scripture_n or_o my_o rightful_a governor_n how_o be_o i_o
bind_v or_o how_o can_v i_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v implicit_o their_o unknown_a doctrine_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n what_o be_v my_o implicit_a belief_n of_o scripture-particle_n but_o my_o general_n belief_n that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a and_o what_o be_v implicit_a belief_n of_o popish_a tradition_n in_o particular_a but_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o all_o popish_a tradition_n in_o general_n be_v true_a if_o therefore_o these_o disputer_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a neccessary_a belief_n and_o yet_o damn_v we_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o our_o implicit_a belief_n they_o shameful_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n §_o 14._o next_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o sincere_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v or_o as_o bellarmine_n speak_v live_v member_n then_o profess_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o extrinsecal_o denominate_v or_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a consist_v of_o professor_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o when_o i_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n undeniable_a and_o say_v i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a he_o say_v you_o prove_v say_v you_o your_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a which_o be_v a_o syntax_n in_o logic_n and_o deserve_v a_o ferula_fw-la for_o no_o minor_a can_v be_v a_o antecedent_n answ._n for_o this_o man_n sake_n i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n better_o than_o by_o his_o hector_n before_o i_o will_v go_v to_o school_n to_o a_o boaster_n reader_n 1._o what_o be_v that_o error_n in_o logic_n that_o be_v call_v a_o syntax_n i_o think_v order_n or_o concord_n have_v be_v no_o error_n i_o confess_v myself_o not_o wise_a enough_o to_o understand_v this_o great_a logician_n and_o his_o ferula_fw-la be_v too_o ready_a which_o must_v be_v use_v for_o syntax_n when_o it_o be_v more_o use_v for_o violation_n of_o syntax_n 2._o risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la can_v no_o antecedent_n be_v a_o minor_a so_o do_v dr._n peter_n heylin_n tell_v i_o before_o he_o in_o his_o certamen_fw-la epistolare_fw-la i_o suppose_v i_o shall_v never_o hear_v a_o three_o say_v so_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o the_o boy_n laugh_v at_o this_o and_o say_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n of_o a_o hypothetical_a proposition_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v all_o one_o be_v it_o that_o boy_n have_v make_v all_o our_o usual_a logick_n and_o now_o these_o two_o logic_n doctor_n have_v reform_v they_o or_o have_v this_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o champion_n in_o that_o art_n in_o which_o he_o be_v below_o the_o novice_n he_o have_v hit_v it_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v to_o his_o offer_n to_o dispute_v before_o a_o lady_n a_o girl_n only_o in_o syllogism_n by_o the_o pen_n for_o this_o with_o she_o may_v have_v pass_v for_o currant_n and_o invincible_a logic_n §_o 15._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a thus_o all_o that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o special_a love_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o unfeigned_a willingness_n to_o obey_v he_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v but_o such_o be_v all_o sincere_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n this_o minor_a the_o man_n deny_v and_o say_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o these_o thing_n answ._n 1._o mark_v how_o hard_o this_o man_n be_v put_v to_o it_o to_o renounce_v his_o charity_n he_o can_v do_v it_o without_o deny_v what_o he_o grant_v a_o sincere_a professor_n of_o any_o religion_n be_v one_o that_o real_o be_v what_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v he_o deny_v not_o that_o protestant_n profess_v to_o love_n god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a that_o sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n god_n as_o if_o he_o that_o sincere_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n do_v not_o love_v he_o these_o be_v papist_n syllogism_n 2._o note_v that_o this_o man_n seem_v to_o know_v all_o protestant_n heart_n better_o than_o they_o do_v themselves_o and_o can_v prove_v they_o all_o hypocrite_n that_o love_v not_o god_n 3._o but_o by_o this_o you_o see_v how_o he_o reproach_v all_o those_o protestant_n that_o turn_v papist_n as_o have_v all_o be_v but_o before_o but_o graceless_a ungodly_a hypocrite_n and_o what_o wonder_v then_o if_o they_o turn_v 4._o but_o it_o may_v be_v his_o word_n formal_o be_v a_o cheat_n a_o protestant_n be_v a_o christian_a renounce_v popery_n it_o be_v his_o christianity_n which_o contain_v his_o love_n to_o god_n his_o renounce_v popery_n be_v but_o his_o freedom_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o perhaps_o the_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o call_v this_o the_o form_n of_o protestant_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o talk_n shall_v not_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o of_o our_o neighbour_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n any_o man_n that_o can_v true_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n without_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v argument_n enough_o to_o answer_v any_o papist_n in_o himself_n 5._o again_o reader_n mark_v how_o much_o these_o man_n magnify_v themselves_o and_o how_o much_o they_o vilify_v the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o god_n let_v a_o man_n see_v all_o god_n wonderful_a goodness_n in_o his_o work_n and_o in_o his_o mercy_n to_o himself_o and_o all_o mankind_n let_v he_o read_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o the_o father_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o son_n that_o be_v describe_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n let_v he_o believe_v the_o promise_n there_o record_v of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o all_o this_o be_v insufficient_a to_o cause_v he_o save_o to_o love_n god_n or_o man_n but_o let_v he_o but_o add_v the_o belief_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o council_n must_v be_v believe_v in_o all_o their_o tradition_n and_o exposition_n and_o then_o the_o work_n will_v be_v do_v and_o he_o may_v love_n god_n unseigned_o and_o be_v love_v by_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o work_v by_o the_o scripture_n unless_o we_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o expositor_n yea_o more_o if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v of_o scripture_n or_o if_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n for_o want_v of_o the_o pope_n sufficient_a proposal_n he_o may_v love_n god_n and_o be_v save_v so_o he_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o council_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proposer_n and_o be_v there_o any_o account_n in_o reason_n to_o be_v give_v of_o this_o strange_a phaenomenon_n why_o a_o man_n can_v love_n god_n if_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o can_v love_v he_o by_o all_o his_o work_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o as_o very_o a_o miracle_n as_o transubstantiation_n and_o sanctification_n by_o holy-water_n or_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la and_o one_o of_o those_o miracle_n that_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n §_o 16._o but_o he_o repeat_v again_o the_o threadbare_a reason_n have_v they_o this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v disobey_v and_o disbelieved_a all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n answ._n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n who_o be_v against_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o yearly_o anathematise_v by_o the_o greek_n who_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o one_o empire_n have_v try_v to_o make_v up_o the_o loss_n by_o lay_v claim_n to_o all_o the_o earth_n o_o of_o what_o consequence_n be_v obedience_n to_o a_o ambitious_a pope_n or_o priest_n in_o comparison_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o write_v law_n of_o god_n §_o 17._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a two_o way_n 1._o if_o this_o the_o love_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v in_o our_o profession_n than_o the_o sincere_a be_v such_o indeed_o but_o this_o be_v in_o our_o profession_n ergo_fw-la of_o this_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o profession_n what_o not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v and_o obey_v his_o word_n be_v he_o not_o drive_v up_o to_o the_o wall_n even_o to_o another_o denial_n of_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n do_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o while_o i_o write_v these_o word_n and_o have_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o in_o sixty_o volume_n and_o more_o and_o do_v not_o protestant_a library_n contain_v such_o profession_n and_o their_o pulpit_n ring_v of_o they_o every_o lord_n day_n what_o be_v a_o profession_n but_o word_n and_o write_n and_o be_v not_o these_o audible_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o deny_v not_o of_o the_o
sincerity_n but_o the_o very_o be_v of_o they_o be_v the_o papist_n confutation_n of_o we_o §_o 18._o second_o i_o prove_v it_o from_o our_o knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o acts._n when_o i_o know_v and_o feelmy_a love_n shall_v i_o believe_v a_o pope_n that_o never_o see_v i_o that_o tell_v i_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o feel_v it_o to_o this_o his_o easy_a answer_n serve_v he_o say_v i_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o i_o true_o love_v god_n or_o his_o servant_n if_o i_o be_v a_o formal_n protestant_n my_o heart_n deceive_v i_o answ._n no_o wonder_v if_o all_o these_o priest_n be_v infallible_a that_o know_v all_o our_o heart_n so_o much_o better_a than_o we_o but_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n the_o true_a searcher_n of_o heart_n if_o the_o fruit_n must_v be_v the_o evidence_n i_o shall_v rather_o fear_v that_o such_o murderer_n of_o hundred_o thousand_o as_o kill_v the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n french_a english_a dutch_a etc._n etc._n be_v like_a to_o be_v without_o love_n than_o all_o those_o meek_a and_o godly_a protestant_n that_o i_o have_v know_v for_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n but_o forma_fw-la be_v sometime_o take_v for_o figura_fw-la and_o for_o outward_a appearance_n only_o and_o such_o formal_a protestant_n as_o have_v but_o the_o clothing_n of_o christianity_n have_v not_o indeed_o the_o love_n of_o god_n §_o 19_o he_o add_v what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o a_o arrian_n a_o turk_n or_o jew_n that_o will_v urge_v the_o like_a knowledge_n or_o feel_n answ._n the_o same_o that_o i_o will_v do_v to_o a_o bloody_a papist_n and'i_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o a_o bediam_fw-la think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o fool_n that_o he_o be_v wise_a or_o a_o beggar_n that_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o a_o illiterate_a man_n that_o he_o be_v learned_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o lord_n or_o wise_a or_o learned_a i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o effect_n without_o the_o adequate_a cause_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o cause_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n and_o lie_v that_o perceive_v not_o god_n amiableness_n in_o the_o necessary_a demonstration_n of_o it_o can_v love_v that_o goodness_n he_o perceive_v not_o nor_o can_v any_o desire_n or_o seek_v the_o heaven_n which_o he_o believe_v not_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o a_o redeemer_n or_o a_o sanctifier_n can_v love_v he_o nor_o can_v he_o love_v believer_n and_o godly_a man_n as_o such_o who_o know_v not_o that_o they_o as_o such_o be_v lovely_a and_o that_o if_o real_o he_o love_v god_n and_o holiness_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n before_o this_o world_n it_o will_v work_v in_o his_o seek_v they_o above_o the_o world_n if_o you_o have_v argue_v rational_o against_o our_o love_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n from_o any_o prove_a defect_n in_o the_o necessary_a cause_n which_o be_v in_o you_o we_o have_v be_v oblige_v thankful_o to_o hear_v and_o try_v your_o word_n but_o let_v reason_n judge_v e._n g._n whether_o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o love_v this_o world_n best_o and_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v it_o who_o look_v to_o go_v at_o death_n into_o the_o flame_n of_o purgatory_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o go_v to_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o his_o redeemer_n and_o whether_o he_o be_v like_a to_o love_n god_n best_a that_o look_v eth_z to_o be_v torment_v by_o he_o in_o those_o flame_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o pass_v into_o heavenly_a perfect_a love_n christ_n tell_v we_o that_o forgive_a much_o cause_v love_n if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o torment_v you_o so_o long_o will_v it_o make_v you_o love_v he_o or_o at_o least_o be_v it_o a_o good_a proof_n that_o protestant_n love_v not_o god_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o will_v torment_v they_o in_o flame_n but_o present_o comfort_v they_o §_o 20._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n be_v this_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a etc._n etc._n here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o the_o predicate_v of_o the_o minor_a be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o conclussion_n and_o then_o he_o distinguish_v of_o the_o mayor_n of_o contain_v involute_o in_o general_a principle_n he_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o express_o he_o deny_v it_o answ._n 1._o the_o marvellous_a logician_n it_o seem_v be_v but_o for_o one_o mood_n or_o figure_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n or_o reason_n 2._o he_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la before_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n plain_a word_n and_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o further_a prove_v it_o mark_v again_o the_o papist_n value_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o explicit_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o express_o deliver_v and_o no_o more_o say_v these_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o if_o they_o believe_v none_o of_o it_o but_o a_o reward_v deity_n say_v most_o or_o some_o more_o of_o the_o creed_n say_v other_o man_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v god_n word_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n or_o council_n say_v be_v such_o next_o he_o distinguish_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v by_o all_o distinct_o know_v and_o express_o believe_v and_o so_o he_o grant_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n very_o good_a now_o all_o that_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o express_a belief_n be_v there_o but_o of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o and_o distinct_o know_v he_o deny_v it_o these_o distinction_n suppose_v say_v he_o i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n answ._n here_o be_v all_o new_a still_o 1._o he_o call_v my_o conclusion_n my_o consequence_n and_o recite_v it_o 2._o what_o he_o mean_v by_o thing_n to_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o believe_v but_o implicit_o be_v pass_v my_o understanding_n have_v to_o do_v with_o that_o man_n that_o have_v all_o this_o while_n describe_v implicit_a belief_n by_o the_o express_a belief_n of_o some_o mere_a general_n truth_n and_o must_v man_n know_v all_o that_o distinct_o which_o they_o believe_v not_o distinct_o but_o in_o their_o general_n the_o man_n sure_o be_v confound_v or_o confound_v i_o the_o general_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n authority_n in_o propound_v and_o expound_v god_n word_n this_o be_v their_o save_a faith_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o they_o propose_v be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o this_o but_o must_v all_o this_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o not_o distinct_o believe_v the_o first_o will_v damn_v all_o that_o know_v not_o every_o one_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n de_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o ad_fw-la will_v show_v that_o they_o believe_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o he_o that_o know_v distinct_o what_o the_o pope_n say_v and_o yet_o believe_v it_o not_o distinct_o can_v believe_v the_o general_a of_o his_o veracity_n but_o perhaps_o he_o speak_v distributive_o of_o two_o sort_n of_o faith_n viz._n both_o the_o implicit_a and_o the_o explicite_fw-la legeris_fw-la and_o so_o mean_v to_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n only_o to_o the_o first_o if_o so_o i_o show_v the_o flat_a contradiction_n of_o it_o before_o where_o there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v express_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o because_o to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o with_o this_o man_n be_v but_o to_o be_v the_o unknown_a consequent_a or_o enclose_v of_o that_o which_o be_v believe_v express_o §_o 21._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o major_n the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o to_o all_o thing_n common_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n after_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n i_o have_v cite_v the_o plain_a word_n at_o large_a of_o 1._o ragus_n in_o council_n basil._n bin._n p._n 299._o 2._o gerson_n de_fw-fr exam_fw-la doct_v p._n 2._o cont_n 2._o 3._o durandus_fw-la in_o praefat._n &_o hierom._n in_o he_o 4._o aquinas_n 22._o 9_o 1._o à_fw-fr 10._o ad_fw-la 1._o &_o de_fw-fr verit._n disp_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la q._n
10._o ad_fw-la 11._o 5._o scatus_fw-la in_o prolegom_n in_o sect_n 1._o 6._o greg._n armin._n in_o prol._n e._n g._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o resp._n fol._n 3_o &_o 4._o 7._o guil._n parisian_n de_fw-fr legib._n c._n 16._o p._n 46._o 8._o bellarmine_n again_o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c._n 10._o ad_fw-la arg_n 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o most_o full_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church-doctor_n but_o to_o all_o these_o he_o give_v such_o frivolous_a answer_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o weary_a the_o reader_n by_o repeat_v and_o answer_v they_o and_o he_o that_o will_v faithful_o peruse_v the_o author_n word_n i_o think_v will_n either_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n of_o he_o or_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v one_o when_o he_o see_v it_o the_o fore-confuted_n contradiction_n of_o sufficient_a explicit_a and_o yet_o not_o sufficient_a implicit_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o next_o a_o vain_a supposition_n that_o to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o theological_a point_n and_o conclusion_n be_v less_o than_o to_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n exposition_n he_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o yet_o their_o council_n need_v exposition_n too_o §_o 22._o iii_o my_o 3d._a argument_n for_o our_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n be_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o christian_n though_o not_o as_o papal_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v their_o own_o therefore_o they_o may_v not_o deny_v the_o consequent_a here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sequel_n answ._n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o expository_n term_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o the_o same_o exposition_n in_o the_o consequent_a be_v suppose_v next_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacy_n a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la answ._n so_o then_o the_o church_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la but_o we_o that_o know_v no_o other_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o to_o prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o any_o other_o than_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n let_v they_o prove_v more_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o next_o he_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v visible_a as_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o he_o deny_v for_o they_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n with_o a_o infallible_a supernatural_a divine_a faith_n answ._n 1._o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o profess_v not_o so_o to_o do_v nay_o rather_o whether_o their_o objective_a faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o creed_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o infallible_a of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o divine_a he_o that_o deny_v this_o seem_v a_o infidel_n but_o if_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o actual_a subjective_n faith_n that_o be_v of_o supernatural_a divine_a infusion_n then_o 1._o no_o hypocrite_n be_v a_o church-member_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v who_o be_v a_o church-member_n beside_o himself_o 3._o and_o so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v clear_a 2._o i_o must_v not_o too_o oft_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v peruse_v a_o small_a tract_n of_o my_o call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n he_o shall_v soon_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n faith_n or_o we_o be_v the_o more_o certain_a and_o divine_a of_o which_o also_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o my_o treatise_n call_v the_o safe_a religion_n and_o mr._n pool_n in_o his_o nullity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n §_o 23._o i_o here_o show_v that_o have_v prove_v our_o visibility_n as_o christian_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v a_o visibility_n as_o papal_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v prove_v his_o humane_a genealogy_n have_v some_o leprous_a ancestor_n need_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v leprous_a here_o he_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v leprosy_n and_o again_o false_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v leprous_a which_o need_v no_o more_o confutation_n than_o be_v oft_o give_v it_o §_o 24._o he_o tell_v i_o how_o a_o 1500_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o we_o dispossess_v he_o without_o order_n etc._n etc._n answ._n a_o old_a cant_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o he_o never_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o nor_o in_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n dominion_n but_o by_o humane_a donation_n and_o consent_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n 3._o and_o that_o they_o that_o give_v he_o that_o power_n may_v on_o just_a reason_n take_v it_o away_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o another_o prince_n country_n can_v stand_v here_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o government_n of_o england_n himself_o §_o 25._o iv._o my_o four_o argument_n add_v more_o than_o my_o thesis_n require_v viz._n if_o there_o have_v be_v since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o universal_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a both_o in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o freedom_n from_o popery_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o 1._o he_o want_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o yet_o before_o abate_v it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o since_o be_v put_v for_o ever_o since_o 2._o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v that_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n constitute_v the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n answ._n in_o despite_n of_o my_o frequent_a profession_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o still_o tell_v he_o that_o our_o christianity_n and_o relation_n to_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o make_v we_o church-member_n and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v our_o renunciation_n of_o a_o usurper_n §_o 26._o i_o prove_v my_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can_v 28_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o before_o where_o he_o be_v consute_v §_o 27._o 2._o my_o 2d_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n athan._n nazianzen_n nissene_n basil_n optatus_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n that_o use_v not_o this_o argument_n of_o pope_n power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o when_o two_o word_n have_v expeditious_o do_v all_o if_o this_o have_v then_o be_v believe_v here_o he_o say_v their_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o answ._n soon_o say_v and_o as_o soon_o deny_v the_o book_n be_v in_o our_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o will_v now_o instance_n but_o in_o cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n in_o his_o day_n and_o in_o augustine_n and_o the_o same_o church_n in_o his_o day_n 1._o do_v cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n believe_v stephen_n universal_a monarchy_n when_o he_o oppose_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o vehemency_n and_o set_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o plea_n from_o tradition_n let_v he_o that_o will_v read_v his_o epistle_n of_o this_o too_o long_o to_o be_v recite_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o can_v and_o when_o he_o twit_v his_o arrogance_n in_o council_n with_o nemo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la se_fw-la dicit_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la 2._o the_o plea_n of_o aurelius_n augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n i_o have_v former_o recite_v of_o which_o harding_n say_v that_o the_o african_n seduce_v by_o aurelius_n continue_v twenty_o year_n in_o schism_n from_o rome_n and_o do_v augustine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n then_o believe_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n even_o in_o the_o empire_n i_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o if_o the_o donatis●…s_n novatian_o and_o all_o such_o sect_n have_v believe_v the_o roman_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n they_o have_v not_o so_o differ_v from_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o the_o father_n will_v have_v take_v the_o near_a way_n and_o write_v their_o volume_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o this_o papal_a rule_n be_v it_o that_o must_v end_v all_o their_o controversy_n instead_o of_o write_v voluminous_o from_o scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o
cause_n which_o they_o do_v not_o §_o 28._o my_o 3d._a proof_n be_v this_o the_o tradition_n witness_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n say_v that_o the_o papal_a vicarship_n or_o sovereignty_n be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v many_o hundred_o year_n without_o it_o therefore_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o papat_fw-la church_n here_o the_o man_n be_v angry_a and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o abominable_a untruth_n set_v down_o by_o a_o forehead_n of_o brass_n a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o utter_v so_o loud_a a_o falsehood_n and_o all_o the_o world_n will_v see_v that_o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o most_o unsufferabl_a out-facers_a of_o truth_n and_o asserter_n of_o open_a falsehood_n that_o ever_o set_a pen_n to_o paper_n yea_o it_o bring_v in_o the_o talk_n of_o rebellion_n against_o his_o majesty_n etc._n etc._n answ._n the_o apprehension_n of_o man_n be_v very_o different_a when_o read_v its_o like_a the_o same_o book_n leave_v i_o past_a doubt_n on_o one_o side_n and_o he_o so_o vehement_o confident_a on_o the_o other_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o 1._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v now_o deny_v the_o papal_a universal_a sovereignty_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v suppose_v and_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v herein_o to_o the_o ancient_a truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 3._o therefore_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o ancient_a truth_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o pope_n universal_a sovereignty_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n i._o as_o to_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o present_a fact_n such_o as_o whether_o most_o of_o england_n speak_v english_a 1._o that_o the_o great_a empire_n of_o abassia_n renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o plead_v tradition_n for_o it_o godignus_n the_o jesuit_n beside_o other_o full_o testify_v and_o justify_v pet._n maffeius_n ribade_n nica_n and_o other_o jesuit_n against_o 〈◊〉_d new_a author_n that_o false_o say_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o take_v the_o roman_n for_o nestorian_a heretic_n p._n 318._o 328._o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o they_o resolve_v never_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o that_o tell_v they_o otherwise_o misinform_v they_o yea_o say_v one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 330._o i_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v rather_o be_v under_o the_o hard_a yoke_n of_o the_o saracen_n than_o under_o the_o mild_a and_o gentle_a empire_n emperor_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o error_n they_o have_v and_o many_o more_o be_v charge_v on_o they_o which_o they_o deny_v and_o believe_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o ephes._n and_o that_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v nestorian_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o they_o be_v for_o dioscorus_n against_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n but_o few_o if_o any_o of_o they_o understand_v the_o bottom_n of_o that_o controversy_n and_o the_o emperor_n tell_v the_o jesuit_n that_o he_o false_o charge_v error_n on_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n say_v see_v your_o faith_n and_o we_o do_v nothing_o differ_v but_o be_v the_o same_o why_o do_v you_o write_v to_o trouble_v quiet_a mind_n without_o cause_n the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o certain_o affirm_v to_o your_o majesty_n that_o if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o error_n this_o one_o that_o you_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v enough_o and_o too_o much_o to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n ii_o to_o this_o she_o reply_v that_o she_o and_o her_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o first_o to_o christ_n himself_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o vicar_n say_v she_o neither_o i_o nor_o i_o deny_v obedience_n to_o st._n peter_n we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v in_o from_o the_o beginning_n if_o that_o be_v not_o right_a why_o for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n be_v there_o no_o man_n find_v that_o will_v warn_v we_o of_o our_o error_n he_o answer_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o in_o the_o year_n pass_v send_v tea●…hers_n into_o abassia_n &c_n &c_n she_o answer_v to_o change_v the_o old_a custom_n and_o rite_n and_o receive_v new_a one_o be_v a_o matter_n full_a of_o danger_n and_o offence_n he_o answer_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v old_a and_o have_v nothing_o new_a etc._n etc._n p._n 323_o 324_o 325._o the_o emperor_n also_o speak_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n p._n 319._o 320_o 321._o so_o that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o best_a information_n from_o abassia_n 1._o that_o they_o abhor_v or_o refuse_v the_o papal_a government_n 2._o and_o that_o for_o this_o they_o plead_v tradition_n and_o antiquity_n and_o the_o same_o be_v notorious_a of_o the_o greek_a armenian_a and_o other_o oriental_a church_n how_o large_a they_o be_v in_o the_o east_n when_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_n be_v there_o i_o have_v former_o show_v out_o of_o his_o word_n who_o say_v that_o those_o eastern_a christian_n be_v more_o than_o either_o the_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v the_o pope_n every_o year_n so_o the_o rest_n be_v know_v to_o reject_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o the_o church_n be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o fit_a for_o contempt_n than_o a_o answer_n that_o all_o such_o rejecter_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o profess_a christian_n be_v past_a doubt_n 2._o and_o that_o greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o forefather_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v so_o far_o past_a question_n that_o i_o will_v not_o vain_o waste_v time_n in_o cite_v author_n to_o prove_v it_o even_o the_o papist_n confess_v it_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o church_n join_v with_o they_o in_o plead_v for_o tradition_n be_v not_o then_o the_o consequence_n clear_a which_o w._n 1_n be_v so_o angry_a at_o i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o unless_o that_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o once_o they_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o greek_n say_v that_o they_o be_v never_o under_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n set_v up_o by_o god_n but_o as_o the_o primate_n of_o one_o empire_n set_v up_o by_o man_n upon_o such_o reason_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v alterable_a as_o well_o as_o unnecessary_a i_o have_v prove_v this_o full_o before_o 1._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 2._o from_o their_o equal_v and_o after_o prefer_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o pretend_v not_o to_o a_o divine_a right_n and_o that_o as_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v not_o so_o blind_a as_o to_o set_v up_o a_o humane_a law_n above_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a many_o other_o proof_n i_o give_v and_o even_o the_o protestant_n hold_v that_o in_o reject_v the_o papacy_n they_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n however_o some_o country_n where_o they_o live_v and_o their_o progenitor_n fall_v under_o the_o papal_a error_n or_o terror_n there_o be_v some_o late_a papist_n that_o think_v that_o what_o be_v hold_v in_o this_o age_n be_v certain_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a and_o that_o no_o country_n tradition_n can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n but_o if_o other_o country_n tradition_n may_v be_v false_a so_o may_v the_o roman_a niceph._n say_v of_o the_o armenian_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n from_o tradition_n which_o rest_v on_o no_o reason_n and_o their_o ancient_a legislator_n and_o doctor_n do_v calumnious_o boast_v that_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o great_a armenia_n deliver_v they_o by_o hand_n &c_n &c_n l._n 18._o c._n 54._o and_o the_o abassian_o that_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o the_o eunuch_n and_o st._n matthew_n be_v before_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o some_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o never_o cure_v of_o they_o retain_v they_o as_o by_o tradition_n to_o this_o day_n and_o it_o be_v know_v how_o tradition_n differ_v about_o easter-day_n and_o the_o millenaries_n opinion_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n take_v the_o
yet_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a itself_o 9_o that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 10._o that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n decree_v at_o basil._n 11._o that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o a_o know_a tongue_n without_o a_o special_a licence_n 12._o that_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n and_o other_o such_o be_v part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o faith_n against_o which_o see_v bishop_n cousin_n and_o dr._n io._n reignolds_n see_v in_o dr._n challenor_n credo_fw-la eccles._n cath._n sixteen_o of_o their_o novelty_n see_v dallaus_n de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la latinorum_n their_o worship_n prove_v new_a all_o this_o w._n i._o pass_v over_o §_o 42._o my_o ten_o argument_n be_v if_o multitude_n yea_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o popery_n but_o not_o of_o christianity_n then_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o i_o bring_v full_a proof_n of_o the_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o ignorance_n which_o they_o themselves_o accuse_v the_o aethiopian_n armenian_n greek_n russian_n etc._n etc._n of_o and_o the_o protestant_n also_o 2._o the_o know_a ignorance_n of_o the_o far_o most_o of_o the_o vulgar_a in_o their_o own_o church_n 3._o the_o papist_n charge_v on_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o about_o their_o power_n 4._o the_o difference_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o late_a and_o florence_n about_o their_o essential_o 5._o the_o large_a proof_n bring_v by_o dr._n field_n append._n l._n 3._o potter_n p._n 68_o bishop_n morton_z apol._n to_o this_o he_o answer_v as_o to_o the_o last_o by_o notorious_a give_v up_o his_o cause_n neither_o grant_v nor_o deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n which_o he_o say_v be_v all_o that_o i_o prove_v answ._n and_o what_o need_v i_o more_o be_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a grant_v by_o he_o therefore_o if_o i_o prove_v it_o also_o successive_o christian_n without_o popery_n i_o know_v not_o what_o else_o the_o man_n will_v have_v but_o he_o say_v arrian_n may_v say_v so_o too_o answ._n arrian_n be_v not_o christian_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o beside_o our_o reject_v popery_n we_o have_v some_o other_o heresy_n which_o unchristen_v we_o 1._o that_o be_v nothing_o against_o my_o argument_n which_o be_v but_o christian_n visibility_n ..._o 2._o why_o do_v he_o never_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o heresy_n be_v will_v he_o not_o if_o he_o can_v and_o be_v he_o not_o concern_v to_o do_v it_o 3._o it_o be_v know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o reject_v popery_n that_o be_v the_o heresy_n they_o charge_v we_o with_o as_o to_o any_o other_o we_o defy_v their_o accusation_n and_o 4._o if_o any_o individual_a person_n be_v accuse_v let_v it_o be_v prove_v our_o religion_n objective_n be_v justify_v by_o themselves_o from_o heresy_n and_o all_o positive_a error_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o sacramental_a covenant_n brief_o explain_v in_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n in_o the_o essential_o and_o in_o that_o and_o the_o integral_n all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o that_o our_o proof_n of_o our_o church_n visibility_n as_o christian_a and_o not_o papal_a be_v all_o that_o reason_n can_v require_v of_o we_o and_o so_o this_o task_n be_v do_v §_o 43._o after_o these_o argument_n i_o add_v some_o testimony_n of_o historian_n which_o show_v how_o melch-canus_n word_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o how_o the_o word_n catholic_n church_n be_v then_o take_v and_o how_o small_a a_o party_n the_o papal_a sovereignty_n have_v in_o the_o very_o worst_a time_n viz._n rog._n hoveden_n &_o mat._n paris_n in_o h._n 2d_o show_v that_o it_o be_v avitas_fw-la leges_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la angliae_fw-la which_o the_o pope_n here_o damn_v and_o anathematise_v all_o that_o favour_a and_o observe_v they_o here_o be_v tradition_n antiquity_n and_o the_o immutability_n of_o rome_n the_o german_a history_n collect_v by_o reuberus_n pistorius_n freberus_n and_o goldastus_n full_o show_v that_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n only_o keep_v under_o by_o a_o turbulent_a faction_n the_o great_a part_n by_o fraud_n and_o force_n which_o never_o consent_v to_o they_o the_o apology_n of_o hen._n 4._o the_o emperor_n in_o m._n freberus_n to._n 1._o p._n 178._o say_v behold_v pope_n hildebrand_n bishop_n when_o doubtless_o they_o be_v murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n such_o as_o deserve_o be_v call_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n yet_o they_o write_v that_o on_o his_o and_o on_o their_o party_n be_v the_o holy_a mother-church_n when_o the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o any_o once_o side_n or_o party_n but_o in_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o faithful_a agree_v together_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n and_o charity_n and_o p._n 179._o see_v how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v beside_o himself_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o with_o he_o he_o into_o the_o ditch_n of_o perdition_n who_o write_v that_o god_n holy_a priesthood_n be_v with_o only_o thirteen_o n._n b._n or_o few_o more_o bishop_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n through_o the_o world_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n our_o mr._n w._n i._o will_v say_v that_o only_o these_o thirteen_o bishop_n be_v univocal_a christian_n when_o certain_o not_o only_o the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n and_o innocent_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o cyprian_a that_o he_o be_v a_o alien_n profane_a a_o enemy_n that_o he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o p._n 181._o but_o some_o that_o go_v out_o from_o we_o say_v and_o write_v that_o they_o defend_v the_o party_n of_o t●…r_n gregory_n not_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o pope_n sect_n be_v distinct_a and_o p._n 180._o but_o our_o adversary_n that_o go_v from_o we_o n._n b._n not_o we_o from_o they_o use_v thus_o to_o commend_v themselves_o we_o be_v the_o catholic_n we_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o writer_n call_v they_o catholic_n and_o we_o that_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o consent_n with_o all_o good_a man_n that_o love_n peace_n and_o brotherhood_n ʋs_o he_o call_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o excommunicate_a because_o we_o resist_v not_o the_o king_n he_o add_v out_o of_o isidore_n etymol_n l._n 8._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n confine_v in_o certain_a country_n but_o diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o they_o have_v not_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o be_v in_o a_o part_n and_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a which_o christ_n have_v redeem_a and_o must_v reign_v with_o christ_n they_o that_o confess_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o be_v divide_v into_o party_n hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o unity_n believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o soul_n proper_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o this_o apol._n of_o the_o emperor_n here_o you_o see_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o that_o the_o papalines_n be_v then_o a_o little_a sect_n of_o thirteen_o or_o a_o few_o more_o bishop_n and_o now_o reader_n open_v thy_o eye_n and_o judge_n whether_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a word_n be_v therefore_o no_o univocal_a but_o equivocal_a christian_n because_o a_o papal_a faction_n and_o a_o equivocate_a jesuit_n may_v call_v they_o so_o all_o this_o the_o prudent_a disputer_n think_v best_a to_o answer_v by_o silence_n §_o 44._o i_o add_v because_o of_o their_o noise_n of_o heresy_n charge_v on_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n greek_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n 1._o that_o they_o differ_v in_o great_a matter_n yea_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n be_v 1._o i_o repeat_v the_o difference_n of_o their_o council_n const._n and_o basil_n against_o late_a and_o florence_n etc._n etc._n 2._o pighius_fw-la word_n hierarch_n eccl._n l._n 6._o that_o these_o council_n go_v against_o the_o undoubted_a faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o
receive_v by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o whereas_o now_o we_o perceive_v that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n though_o they_o know_v it_o not_o to_o be_v papal_a and_o we_o think_v it_o must_v have_v be_v receive_v as_o from_o a_o general_n council_n or_o the_o church_n universal_a but_o it_o seem_v here_o it_o be_v needful_a but_o that_o it_o be_v from_o their_o particular_a pastor_n 4._o by_o this_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o be_v other_o pastor_n that_o must_v be_v believe_v receive_v and_o obey_v before_o the_o pope_n and_o subjection_n to_o they_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o churchmembership_n when_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o no_o such_o necessity_n how_o the_o pope_n will_v take_v this_o we_o know_v not_o but_o 5._o it_o leave_v we_o to_o new_a doubt_n as_o hard_o as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n how_o to_o know_v that_o such_o indeed_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o a_o pope_n and_o how_o to_o know_v which_o be_v they_o we_o perceive_v now_o that_o implicit_a faith_n be_v not_o necessary_o the_o believe_a pope_n or_o council_n but_o the_o believe_v those_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n qu._n 1._o but_o can_v we_o know_v that_o christ_n institute_v they_o before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o that_o he_o be_v true_a christ_n q_o 2._o can_v you_o be_v true_a pastor_n without_o derivation_n from_o and_o dependence_n on_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v so_o know_v by_o the_o people_n o_o that_o you_o will_v but_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o tell_v we_o how_o and_o then_o q._n 3._o tell_v we_o why_o the_o same_o people_n may_v not_o take_v protestant_a armenian_a abassine_a bishop_n or_o presbyter_n for_o true_a pastor_n by_o the_o same_o proof_n q._n 4._o and_o do_v not_o the_o proof_n or_o knowledge_n that_o man_n be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n without_o know_v that_o they_o have_v ordination_n jurisdiction_n mission_n or_o confirmation_n as_o you_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o also_o prove_v that_o quoad_fw-la esse_fw-la man_n may_v be_v cur_n true_a pastor_n without_o any_o of_o these_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o esse_fw-la rei_fw-la be_v presuppose_v to_o the_o proof_n and_o knowledge_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o relation_n the_o fundamentum_fw-la enter_v the_o definition_n i_o conclude_v that_o be_v myself_o unfeigned_o and_o earnest_o desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o appoint_a church-monarch_n of_o government_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o dwell_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v diligent_o read_v what_o you_o and_o abu●…_n 〈◊〉_d more_o have_v write_v for_o it_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o never_o yet_o hear_v or_o see_v any_o proposal_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o of_o abundance_n of_o your_o doctrine_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v my_o understanding_n of_o it_o but_o much_o to_o convince_v i_o of_o the_o contrary_n and_o i_o may_v suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o case_n of_o most_o who_o need_v as_o clear_a evidence_n as_o i_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v none_o of_o we_o by_o your_o concession_n oblige_v either_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o praecepti_fw-la to_o believe_v you_o or_o to_o be_v your_o subject_n and_o i_o confess_v i_o like_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o man_n who_o labour_n be_v only_o to_o subject_a man_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o their_o lawful_a magistrate_n and_o domestic_a governor_n and_o to_o the_o teaching-conduct_a believe_v of_o those_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n better_a than_o they_o that_o make_v it_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o make_v all_o man_n on_o earth_n their_o subject_n and_o yet_o teacher_n we_o acknowledge_v necessary_a to_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v not_o first_o necessary_a to_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n before_o we_o believe_v in_o christ._n but_o 1._o the_o first_o messenger_n apostle_n do_v at_o once_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o send_v they_o to_o witness_v his_o resurrection_n miracle_n and_o work_n and_o to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o the_o tongue_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o they_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o both_o at_o once_o but_o principal_o of_o the_o former_a for_o if_o a_o un-called_n preacher_n have_v wrought_v a_o miracle_n it_o will_v have_v prove_v his_o doctrine_n but_o not_o his_o call_v 2._o but_o ordinary_a preacher_n now_o give_v we_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v heretofore_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n the_o doctrine_n self-evidencing_a divinity_n as_o it_o have_v the_o impress_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n his_o holiness_n justice_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o antecedent_n prophecy_n fulfil_v and_o the_o concomitant_a and_o subsequent_a miracle_n and_o the_o continue_a seal_n of_o the_o sanctify_a spirit_n in_o all_o believer_n and_o by_o these_o we_o be_v first_o draw_v by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n before_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o send_v these_o man_n to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n yea_o without_o believe_v they_o ofttimes_o to_o be_v our_o pastor_n or_o any_o pastor_n at_o all_o we_o detest_v those_o self-preacher_n that_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o receive_v they_o before_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o receive_v he_o and_o we_o detest_v that_o false_a doctrine_n that_o say_v that_o a_o layman_n may_v not_o convert_v soul_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n may_v not_o by_o his_o open_v that_o word_n win_v soul_n that_o know_v not_o yet_o what_o ministry_n christ_n have_v institute_v to_o my_o instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o convert_v by_o a_o maid_n and_o the_o indian_n by_o frumentius_n 13._o and_o edesius_n he_o answer_v 1._o that_o he_o can_v prove_v the_o papacy_n preach_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o or_o any_o other_o parcicular_a point_n of_o our_o doctrine_n 2._o we_o must_v both_o say_v that_o all_o important_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o and_o till_o you_o have_v evince_v this_o of_o the_o supremacy_n to_o be_v none_o of_o those_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v it_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o they_o 3._o explicate_v the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v suppose_v they_o be_v tell_v it_o consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o people_n unite_v and_o that_o they_o must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o which_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n be_v implicit_o include_v answ._n 1._o our_o doctrine_n as_o you_o call_v it_o be_v christianity_n and_o i_o can_v prove_v nothing_o preach_v but_o what_o make_v they_o christian_n which_o you_o confess_v may_v be_v without_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o a_o brave_a argument_n all_o important_a truth_n be_v preach_v ergo_fw-la you_o must_v prove_v that_o this_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o 1._o all_o important_a truth_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v preach_v by_o those_o two_o layman_n and_o by_o a_o maid_n all_o essential_a truth_n we_o may_v suppose_v preach_v or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christian_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o every_o truth_n of_o continue_a institution_n be_v not_o only_o important_a but_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n whence_o you_o may_v infer_v in_o your_o way_n that_o the_o maid_n and_o the_o two_o layman_n have_v preach_v every_o such_o truth_n and_o leave_v not_o one_o out_o or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v such_o a_o important_a truth_n and_o not_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a which_o yet_o i_o have_v oft_o and_o full_o do_v 3._o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o at_o first_o in_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o old_a copy_n show_v and_o baptism_n be_v administer_v without_o mention_v that_o article_n 4._o if_o hold_v that_o people_n must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n will_v serve_v than_o we_o be_v all_o right_a 〈◊〉_d if_o this_o be_v a_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o papacy_n we_o be_v all_o papist_n yea_o perhaps_o mahometan_n and_o he●…thens_n be_v papist_n too_o by_o such_o a_o belief_n to_o 〈◊〉_d instance_n from_o act._n 2._o he_o say_v 1._o who_o can_v tell_v whether_o peter_n tell_v they_o not_o of_o his_o suprem●…_n 〈◊〉_d 2._o they_o address_v their_o speech_n first_o